Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n according_a order_n time_n 2,805 5 3.1681 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A47305 Of Christian communion to be kept on in the unity of Christs church and among the professors of truth and holiness : and of the obligations, both of faithful pastors to administer orthodox and holy offices, and of faithful people to communicate in the same : fitted for persecuted or divided or corrupt states of churches when they are either born down by secular persecutions or broken with schisms or defiled with sinful offices and ministrations. Kettlewell, John, 1653-1695. 1693 (1693) Wing K377; ESTC R27454 232,235 232

There are 37 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

those_o who_o have_v be_v ordain_v by_o they_o beside_o all_o this_o instead_o of_o anti-bishop_n be_v absolute_o null_a and_o in_o reality_n no_o bishop_n to_o heal_v and_o compose_v the_o difference_n of_o a_o miserable_o harass_v and_o divide_v church_n on_o such_o competition_n it_o have_v be_v sometime_o agree_v that_o whichsoever_o of_o they_o be_v the_o right_n on_o the_o death_n of_o either_o the_o survivor_n shall_v be_v own_v and_o the_o church_n shall_v have_v no_o other_o bishop_n and_o so_o all_o the_o ordination_n and_o episcopal_a act_n therein_o shall_v pass_v through_o his_o hand_n and_o stand_v on_o his_o authority_n whilst_o he_o live_v thus_o it_o be_v at_o antioch_n where_o the_o church_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o part_n 〈◊〉_d for_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o faith_n which_o be_v common_a to_o they_o both_o but_o of_o the_o bishop_n as_o socrates_n 266._o say_v some_o own_n and_o adhere_v to_o mele●ius_n and_o other_o to_o paulinus_n for_o to_o heal_v and_o close_v this_o lamentable_a schism_n it_o be_v agree_v which_o 262._o sozomen_n call_v a_o admirable_a counsel_n and_o expedient_a that_o on_o the_o death_n of_o either_o the_o survivor_n shall_v hold_v the_o see_v alone_o for_o his_o life_n without_o be_v confront_v and_o oppose_v by_o the_o ordination_n of_o any_o other_o person_n to_o prevent_v which_o a_o oath_n be_v exact_v of_o all_o in_o that_o church_n who_o seem_v to_o stand_v fair_a for_o the_o episcopate_n and_o of_o flavianus_n among_o the_o rest_n that_o on_o the_o death_n of_o either_o of_o the_o bishop_n they_o will_v not_o be_v ordain_v bishop_n of_o antioch_n whilst_o the_o other_o survive_v which_o agreement_n and_o oath_n be_v afterward_o 10._o break_v by_o flavianus_n when_o on_o the_o death_n of_o meletius_n he_o be_v ordain_v bishop_n against_o paulinus_n cost_v he_o so_o much_o trouble_v and_o difficulty_n as_o he_o find_v to_o get_v himself_o receive_v for_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o both_o in_o egypt_n arabia_n and_o cyprus_n and_o at_o rome_n and_o among_o the_o western_a bishop_n afterward_o thus_o though_o man_n in_o a_o schism_n do_v ill_o in_o ordain_v other_o yet_o be_v not_o those_o ordination_n null_a in_o themselves_o but_o real_o confer_v the_o power_n of_o order_n which_o the_o person_n may_v exercise_v if_o the_o church_n please_v and_o when_o once_o the_o person_n be_v reconcile_v and_o have_v satisfy_v the_o church_n for_o their_o schism_n they_o have_v often_o be_v allow_v to_o officiate_v in_o virtue_n of_o that_o ordination_n without_o be_v ordain_v over_o again_o by_o the_o great_a council_n and_o through_o the_o early_a and_o late_a age_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o show_v that_o their_o ordination_n be_v not_o null_a in_o themselves_o for_o if_o such_o person_n have_v never_o receive_v any_o spiritual_a power_n in_o their_o ordination_n they_o have_v none_o to_o exercise_v and_o have_v the_o church_n be_v of_o this_o persuasion_n it_o will_v never_o have_v admit_v they_o to_o exercise_v those_o power_n which_o it_o believe_v be_v never_o confer_v on_o they_o but_o though_o these_o man_n even_o after_o they_o have_v fall_v into_o a_o schism_n or_o other_o who_o be_v ordain_v therein_o have_v order_n yet_o be_v it_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n to_o deny_v they_o the_o ministerial_a exercise_n of_o their_o order_n man_n must_v have_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n as_o well_o as_o order_n before_o they_o can_v exercise_v their_o order_n and_o minister_v to_o the_o faithful_a in_o any_o religious_a assembly_n and_o though_o their_o schism_n do_v not_o utter_o divest_v or_o exclude_v they_o from_o the_o power_n of_o order_n yet_o it_o do_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n without_o which_o the_o faithful_a who_o be_v not_o to_o seek_v but_o to_o shun_v the_o ministration_n of_o schismatic_n and_o excommunicate_a person_n must_v not_o partake_v with_o they_o in_o any_o exercise_n of_o order_n and_o to_o this_o communion_n after_o once_o they_o have_v just_o lose_v and_o fall_v from_o it_o they_o be_v to_o be_v restore_v again_o in_o degree_n more_o or_o less_o and_o to_o be_v receive_v to_o the_o communion_n either_o only_a of_o lay-member_n or_o else_o of_o clergy_n and_o to_o officiate_v according_a to_o their_o former_a honour_n as_o the_o church_n please_v and_o as_o to_o this_o admission_n and_o allowance_n to_o exercise_v their_o order_n in_o its_o communion_n the_o church_n have_v act_v various_o according_a as_o it_o see_v cause_n when_o ordination_n have_v be_v make_v against_o the_o rule_n of_o unity_n though_o the_o offender_n thereby_o receive_v order_n yet_o in_o care_n of_o these_o rule_n and_o to_o assert_v and_o keep_v up_o discipline_n it_o have_v at_o some_o time_n deny_v as_o well_o as_o at_o other_o time_n grant_v its_o communion_n to_o they_o for_o their_o exercise_n of_o the_o same_o where_o it_o judge_v that_o rigour_n expedient_a on_o their_o submission_n it_o will_v receive_v they_o to_o communicate_v as_o layman_n but_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v allow_v the_o privilege_n nor_o permit_v to_o act_n and_o officiate_v as_o bishop_n and_o priest_n in_o her_o communion_n nor_o shall_v other_o church_n receive_v they_o and_o join_v with_o they_o as_o such_o till_o moreover_o satisfaction_n have_v be_v first_o give_v to_o those_o rule_n of_o unity_n in_o ordination_n which_o have_v be_v break_v in_o they_o and_o this_o it_o have_v do_v not_o only_o in_o case_n of_o this_o great_a rule_n of_o not_o ordain_v a_o bishop_n into_o a_o full_a church_n but_o also_o in_o case_n of_o other_o rule_n which_o be_v of_o less_o account_n than_o it_o be_v thus_o of_o ordination_n into_o a_o church_n already_o vacant_a if_o it_o be_v make_v without_o the_o metropolitan_n consent_n the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o afterward_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n ●●9_n de●rce_n that_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o receive_v such_o a_o one_o for_o a_o bishop_n and_o of_o ordination_n at_o large_a without_o declare_v the_o appropriate_a church_n or_o place_n wherein_o the_o person_n ordain_v be_v to_o officiate_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n decree_n 6._o that_o they_o shall_v be_v invalid_a not_o to_o mention_v or_o insist_v also_o on_o the_o council_n of_o nice_n reject_v of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d anti-bishop_n ordain_v by_o the_o schismatic_a meletius_n 9_o till_o they_o be_v confirm_v by_o a_o more_o holy_a imposition_n of_o hand_n as_o their_o synodical_a epistle_n say_v because_o there_o be_v a_o incapacity_n more_o than_o ordinary_a for_o give_v order_n not_o only_o to_o anti-bishop_n but_o to_o any_o other_o in_o his_o case_n which_o because_o it_o may_v be_v of_o use_n in_o this_o argument_n i_o shall_v give_v a_o account_n of_o meletius_n be_v bishop_n of_o lycus_n in_o egypt_n under_o the_o see_v of_o alexandria_n and_o as_o epiphanius_n 1._o relate_v be_v next_o in_o dignity_n and_o power_n to_o peter_n the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n himself_o and_o he_o with_o his_o adherent_n break_v off_o from_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o set_v up_o a_o schism_n separate_v from_o peter_n the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o 3._o assemble_v for_o prayer_n and_o other_o divine_a office_n by_o themselves_o and_o 1._o ordain_v opposite_a bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n for_o the_o erection_n of_o opposite_a church_n in_o several_a place_n as_o eleutheropolis_n gaza_n and_o aelia_n as_o epiphanius_n say_v and_o these_o separate_a erection_n of_o church_n and_o opposite_a ordination_n he_o make_v after_o he_o have_v be_v just_o depose_v by_o peter_n in_o a_o synod_n as_o we_o be_v assure_v by_o athanasius_n who_o have_v the_o best_a opportunity_n to_o understand_v the_o truth_n of_o these_o matter_n and_o the_o most_o cause_n to_o inquire_v into_o they_o and_o also_o by_o socrates_n afterward_o and_o that_o too_o 9_o among_o other_o crime_n for_o his_o have_v fall_v in_o the_o persecution_n to_o deny_v the_o faith_n and_o to_o sacrifice_v to_o idol_n which_o crime_n when_o any_o bishop_n or_o clergy_n be_v once_o convict_v of_o by_o the_o great_a rule_n of_o church-discipline_n they_o be_v never_o afterward_o to_o exercise_v any_o clerical_a power_n or_o to_o officiate_v as_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n but_o upon_o their_o reconciliation_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v only_o to_o lay-communion_n after_o such_o fall_v say_v st._n cyprian_n it_o be_v in_o vain_a for_o any_o to_o seek_v to_o usurp_v the_o episcopacy_n since_o it_o be_v manifest_a such_o man_n can_v neither_o preside_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n nor_o aught_o to_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o god_n chief_o since_o it_o have_v be_v decree_v by_o cornelius_n and_o by_o we_o and_o by_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n concern_v they_o that_o after_o such_o offence_n they_o may_v be_v ox._n admit_v to_o penance_n and_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n but_o must_v stand_v
deceiver_n who_o for_o filthy_a lucre_n sake_n teach_v thing_n which_o they_o ought_v not_o and_o to_o convince_v gain_n sayer_n tit._n 1._o 9_o 10_o 11._o and_o to_o be_v ready_a with_o all_o faithful_a diligence_n to_o banish_v and_o drive_v away_o all_o erroneous_a and_o strange_a doctrine_n contrary_a to_o god_n word_n and_o to_o call_v upon_o other_o to_o do_v the_o same_o as_o all_o bishop_n according_a to_o our_o form_n of_o consecration_n solemn_o promise_v in_o their_o ordination_n now_o sustain_v the_o office_n and_o standieg_n in_o place_n of_o such_o teacher_n to_o the_o church_n the_o minister_n of_o christ_n must_v necessary_o be_v bind_v to_o a_o diligent_a discharge_v of_o their_o ministration_n or_o to_o administer_v the_o word_n in_o the_o forementioned_a case_n for_o then_o both_o the_o prayer_n and_o religious_a service_n and_o the_o life_n and_o common_a practice_n of_o the_o people_n be_v corrupt_v by_o heinous_a immorality_n and_o they_o want_v to_o be_v teach_v and_o show_v that_o there_o be_v any_o harm_n in_o either_o false_a teacher_n have_v justify_v to_o they_o the_o immorality_n in_o both_o and_o by_o vacate_v moral_a precept_n and_o by_o broach_v corrupt_a and_o immoral_a doctrine_n have_v labour_v to_o leave_v in_o they_o no_o conscience_n thereof_o and_o when_o people_n be_v thus_o untaught_a or_o mistaught_a in_o great_a and_o concern_v part_n of_o the_o depositum_fw-la they_o who_o will_v faithful_o discharge_v the_o part_n of_o true_a teacher_n must_v take_v care_n to_o teach_v they_o better_o if_o they_o be_v to_o attend_v on_o it_o to_o labour_v and_o give_v themselves_o whole_o to_o it_o how_o can_v they_o let_v it_o fall_v at_o such_o a_o time_n not_o appear_v at_o all_o or_o appear_v very_o negligent_a therein_o if_o they_o be_v to_o continue_v in_o teach_v these_o thing_n they_o must_v not_o flinch_v from_o it_o and_o give_v it_o off_o if_o they_o be_v to_o do_v it_o in_o and_o out_o of_o season_n they_o must_v not_o sure_o be_v want_v when_o the_o season_n be_v so_o press_v if_o against_o deceiver_n and_o gain-sayers_n they_o ought_v in_o no_o wise_a to_o fail_v when_o those_o gain-sayers_n be_v so_o busy_a at_o work_n for_o perversion_n thereof_o so_o that_o as_o faithful_a teacher_n of_o christ_n church_n they_o be_v not_o to_o suffer_v the_o people_n to_o perish_v for_o want_v of_o save_a knowledge_n but_o be_v due_o to_o administer_v the_o word_n in_o the_o foresay_a case_n i_o may_v also_o further_o note_v the_o necessity_n and_o obligation_n they_o lie_v under_o to_o the_o forementioned_a ministration_n from_o their_o be_v set_v up_o by_o our_o saviour_n as_o the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n mat._n 5._o 14._o and_o as_o the_o salt_n of_o the_o earth_n ver_fw-la 13._o for_o as_o the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n they_o must_v shine_v out_o and_o give_v light_a abroad_o man_n not_o light_v a_o candle_n to_o put_v it_o under_o a_o bushel_n that_o it_o may_v shine_v only_o to_o itself_o but_o put_v it_o on_o a_o candlestiks_a that_o it_o may_v shine_v out_o and_o give_v light_a to_o other_o ver_fw-la 15._o and_o such_o light_n they_o give_v to_o the_o world_n by_o their_o ministration_n when_o they_o minister_v the_o gospel_n and_o all_o the_o doctrine_n and_o duty_n of_o it_o with_o the_o knowledge_n whereof_o the_o world_n be_v to_o be_v enlighten_v and_o as_o the_o salt_n of_o the_o earth_n they_o must_v keep_v the_o religious_a service_n and_o moral_n of_o man_n from_o be_v corrupt_v since_o the_o use_n of_o salt_n be_v to_o keep_v out_o putrefaction_n and_o rottenness_n and_o this_o also_o be_v by_o their_o ministration_n for_o by_o their_o constancy_n in_o administer_a sound_n and_o wholesome_a thing_n they_o season_n the_o church_n keep_v it_o up_o in_o purity_n and_o soundness_n and_o keep_v out_o all_o adulteration_n and_o corruption_n when_o endeavour_n be_v use_v to_o introduce_v they_o by_o seducer_n and_o thus_o by_o all_o the_o character_n of_o the_o ministerial_a function_n and_o the_o part_n of_o their_o office_n do_v the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o christ_n church_n stand_v bind_v to_o a_o actual_a discharge_n of_o their_o ministration_n in_o the_o forementioned_a case_n and_o can_v drop_n or_o let_v they_o fall_v without_o those_o character_n and_o office_n fly_v in_o their_o face_n for_o how_o will_v they_o answer_v it_o to_o god_n as_o have_v act_v the_o part_n of_o his_o faithful_a messenger_n to_o a_o people_n so_o endanger_v and_o deprave_v by_o pollute_a worship_n doctrine_n and_o practice_n if_o they_o have_v stand_v dumb_a and_o speechless_a and_o instead_o of_o ministerial_a utter_v and_o deliver_v have_v suppress_v and_o keep_v back_o the_o word_n and_o message_n they_o be_v charge_v with_o how_o as_o have_v well_o discharge_v the_o place_n of_o minister_n ambassador_n of_o public_a agent_n and_o representative_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n if_o they_o have_v be_v such_o representative_n as_o will_v not_o act_v or_o order_v any_o thing_n in_o their_o name_n such_o ambassador_n as_o will_v pursue_v no_o instruction_n such_o public_a agent_n as_o refuse_v to_o act_n and_o such_o minister_n and_o officer_n as_o will_v not_o minister_v or_o officiate_v in_o their_o master_n business_n and_o affair_n yea_o even_o in_o those_o of_o most_o importance_n and_o in_o their_o great_a exigency_n how_o as_o have_v be_v co-worker_n and_o fellow-helper_n if_o whilst_o he_o be_v so_o busy_a at_o work_n with_o a_o endanger_v and_o deprave_a people_n by_o his_o spirit_n and_o providence_n they_o give_v over_o work_v and_o leave_v he_o to_o do_v it_o by_o himself_o make_v he_o no_o help_n or_o furtherance_n by_o their_o ministration_n how_o will_v they_o hope_v to_o approve_v themselves_o before_o he_o to_o have_v be_v good_a and_o faithful_a minister_n and_o steward_n of_o religion_n and_o its_o mystery_n if_o they_o have_v not_o be_v both_o faithful_a keeper_n and_o faithful_a dispenser_n thereof_o will_v religion_n and_o its_o mystery_n be_v judge_v to_o have_v be_v well_o keep_v when_o it_o be_v suffer_v to_o be_v spoil_v and_o rifle_v and_o when_o the_o bright_a gem_n of_o this_o inestimable_a depositum_fw-la have_v be_v break_v embezele_v or_o make_v away_o and_o its_o choice_a flower_n pick_v out_o and_o not_o only_o base_a but_o poisonous_a and_o corrupt_a weed_n put_v in_o their_o place_n or_o will_v they_o be_v deem_v to_o have_v be_v their_o faithful_a minister_n and_o dispenser_n who_o have_v not_o minister_v or_o dispense_v they_o on●_n to_o other_o but_o conceal_v and_o keep_v they_o up_o to_o themselves_o or_o dispenser_n of_o they_o by_o church_n ministration_n at_o the_o head_n of_o visible_a society_n who_o have_v not_o pastoral_o administer_v they_o to_o any_o church_n or_o head_v any_o society_n of_o faithful_a upright_a christian_n in_o the_o free_a and_o steadfast_a profession_n and_o observance_n thereof_o how_o can_v they_o expect_v at_o the_o great_a day_n of_o account_n to_o pass_v for_o man_n that_o have_v acquit_v themselves_o as_o good_a watchman_n if_o all_o the_o time_n whilst_o sin_n and_o death_n be_v advance_v to_o make_v the_o people_n their_o prey_n they_o can_v spy_v no_o enemy_n or_o if_o they_o do_v will_v speak_v of_o none_o nor_o warn_v against_o they_o or_o for_o trusty_a overseer_n if_o they_o over-looked_n the_o most_o press_a want_v of_o their_o charge_n or_o give_v no_o caution_n nor_o make_v any_o supply_n or_o provision_n for_o they_o they_o be_v ill_a overseer_n that_o overlook_a when_o they_o shall_v espy_v their_o people_n necessity_n or_o danger_n and_o oversee_v not_o as_o keeper_n and_o guardian_n but_o conspirator_n and_o betrayer_n if_o when_o they_o see_v they_o they_o will_v not_o discover_v they_o but_o let_v they_o silent_o and_o secure_o run_v into_o destruction_n can_v they_o imagine_v he_o will_v call_v they_o faithful_a guide_n who_o leave_v a_o people_n that_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o true_a way_n to_o guide_v themselves_o or_o to_o be_v misguide_v by_o seducer_n who_o will_v not_o show_v the_o right_a way_n when_o all_o endeavour_n be_v use_v to_o make_v they_o go_v wrong_a nor_o when_o they_o see_v they_o stray_v will_v call_v out_o to_o they_o to_o come_v back_o again_o or_o that_o he_o will_v repute_v they_o good_a shepherd_n who_o have_v take_v no_o care_n to_o feed_v their_o flock_n with_o spiritual_a ministration_n nor_o to_o guard_n and_o arm_v they_o against_o wolf_n and_o seducer_n nor_o to_o keep_v they_o together_o when_o they_o be_v in_o danger_n to_o be_v scatter_v nor_o to_o bring_v they_o back_o when_o they_o be_v stray_v from_o the_o fold_n or_o that_o he_o will_v receive_v and_o welcome_v they_o as_o constant_a and_o faithful_a teacher_n of_o his_o church_n who_o have_v let_v man_n sin_n and_o perish_v for_o want_v of_o teach_v and_o can_v silent_o sit_v by_o and_o
and_o let_v in_o member_n by_o baptism_n and_o on_o just_a cause_n cast_v they_o out_o by_o excommunication_n and_o ordain_v other_o that_o shall_v hold_v on_o from_o time_n to_o time_n to_o do_v the_o same_o but_o in_o discharge_n of_o these_o mere_a spiritual_a power_n they_o can_v claim_v the_o establish_a place_n wherein_o to_o assemble_v for_o these_o ministration_n nor_o any_o enforcement_n of_o civil_a law_n to_o make_v man_n due_o frequent_v they_o and_o to_o hinder_v all_o from_o disturb_v they_o or_o from_o demeaning_n themselves_o disorderly_a or_o irreverent_o at_o they_o nor_o can_v they_o claim_v any_o secular_a benefice_n for_o maintenance_n of_o those_o who_o minister_n therein_o nor_o to_o have_v any_o cognizance_n of_o will_n tyth_n or_o other_o temporal_a matter_n nor_o to_o have_v their_o canon_n make_v regal_a injunction_n or_o their_o rubric_n make_v parliamentary_a law_n and_o the_o breaker_n thereof_o punishable_a by_o civil_a magistrate_n in_o their_o estate_n or_o person_n nor_o their_o spiritual_a censure_n to_o bring_v man_n under_o civil_a incapacity_n or_o make_v they_o liable_a to_o civil_a punishment_n or_o the_o like_a the_o state_n that_o give_v these_o civil_a accession_n to_o the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n in_o their_o incorporation_n have_v call_v they_o back_o and_o take_v they_o away_o in_o their_o deprivation_n so_o that_o now_o to_o stick_v to_o christ_n they_o must_v quit_v the_o benefit_n of_o incorporation_n and_o the_o favour_n of_o prince_n and_o as_o man_n leave_v to_o their_o naked_a spiritual_a power_n which_o no_o rightful_a state_n can_v deprive_v they_o of_o be_v content_a to_o exercise_v their_o spiritual_a ministration_n in_o the_o foresay_a case_n not_o as_o in_o a_o endow_v and_o secular_o protect_v but_o as_o in_o a_o persecute_a or_o secular_o destitute_a church_n and_o as_o the_o state_n have_v power_n over_o all_o these_o secular_a endowment_n of_o the_o spiritual_a ministration_n because_o it_o confer_v they_o so_o have_v it_o 2._o over_o some_o other_o power_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n whilst_o it_o keep_v separate_v but_o which_o it_o give_v up_o to_o the_o civil_a state_n during_o the_o benefit_n of_o incorporation_n with_o it_o for_o some_o power_n the_o church_n may_v have_v no_o necessity_n to_o insist_v on_o either_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o religion_n or_o of_o the_o soul_n of_o men._n and_o such_o power_n for_o the_o great_a benefit_n of_o incorporation_n it_o may_v be_v free_a to_o part_v with_o thus_o provide_v the_o substance_n of_o religion_n be_v secure_v and_o keep_v up_o among_o man_n in_o all_o necessary_a point_n of_o worship_n and_o doctrine_n and_o the_o main_a of_o discipline_n be_v take_v care_n for_o by_o canon_n already_o allow_v as_o it_o 7._o be_v on_o the_o submission_n of_o our_o church_n and_o clergy_n make_v under_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o the_o church_n may_v be_v free_a by_o compromise_n to_o agree_v that_o it_o will_v exercise_v no_o canon_n already_o make_v but_o such_o as_o be_v consistent_a with_o the_o king_n prerogative_n and_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n and_o that_o in_o case_n of_o any_o other_o a_o stop_n shall_v be_v put_v to_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o spiritual_a court_n by_o secular_a prohibition_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n shall_v not_o meet_v to_o make_v more_o or_o assemble_v in_o synod_n or_o convocation_n but_o when_o summon_v thither_o by_o the_o king_n writ_n nor_o any_o of_o their_o agreement_n shall_v be_v give_v out_o for_o canon_n or_o order_n but_o what_o he_o allow_v to_o pass_v under_o his_o ratification_n and_o that_o after_o they_o be_v pass_v in_o thing_n dispensable_a on_o just_a cause_n in_o any_o particular_a case_n he_o shall_v have_v the_o chief_a power_n to_o grant_v a_o dispensation_n that_o all_o bishop_n come_v in_o to_o govern_v this_o church_n according_a to_o the_o foresay_a rule_n and_o prescription_n shall_v be_v of_o his_o nomination_n and_o that_o the_o advancement_n of_o all_o minister_n to_o benefice_a and_o civil_o fortify_v cure_n and_o administration_n shall_v be_v according_a to_o the_o right_n of_o patronage_n establish_v by_o the_o law_n and_o such_o like_a these_o and_o such_o like_a power_n be_v natural_o resident_a in_o the_o church_n itself_o in_o a_o separate_a state_n or_o when_o it_o stands-upon_a its_o own_o bottom_n and_o be_v not_o incorporate_v for_o as_o a_o society_n it_o must_v have_v power_n in_o itself_o to_o make_v needful_a and_o wholesome_a rule_n of_o government_n from_o time_n to_o time_n and_o to_o have_v its_o bishop_n and_o minister_n meet_v together_o as_o they_o can_v that_o they_o may_v make_v they_o and_o to_o appoint_v person_n who_o shall_v be_v entrust_v with_o the_o administration_n thereof_o and_o according_o whilst_o the_o church_n be_v keep_v separate_a from_o the_o state_n and_o persecute_v by_o it_o these_o power_n be_v exercise_v by_o the_o church_n and_o by_o its_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n under_o all_o the_o heathen_a persecution_n during_o which_o the_o clergy_n under_o their_o bishop_n and_o the_o bishop_n under_o their_o metropolitan_n be_v convene_v and_o meet_v in_o synod_n and_o make_v canon_n and_o decide_v controversy_n and_o sentence_v criminal_n and_o fill_v up_o vacancy_n in_o presbytery_n or_o bishopric_n have_v a_o new_a bishop_n elect_v by_o the_o metropolitan_a and_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n or_o sometime_o by_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n of_o the_o diocese_n and_o the_o like_a indeed_o as_o good_a subject_n of_o the_o state_n they_o be_v bind_v to_o keep_v all_o innocent_a state_n law_n and_o can_v by_o any_o devise_a canon_n of_o their_o own_o cast_v off_o their_o obligation_n or_o forbid_v themselves_o or_o the_o church_n to_o pay_v a_o due_a civil_a obedience_n by_o observance_n thereof_o so_o that_o they_o have_v no_o power_n in_o any_o condition_n of_o make_v any_o church_n canon_n which_o require_v subject_n to_o act_v against_o innocent_a state_n constitution_n nor_o may_v they_o lawful_o refuse_v when_o the_o state_n call_v they_o to_o meet_v together_o in_o synod_n or_o otherwise_o but_o as_o good_a subject_n be_v oblige_v to_o pay_v a_o ready_a obedience_n and_o to_o appear_v upon_o its_o summons_n these_o be_v only_o proper_a expression_n of_o civil_a subjection_n from_o which_o the_o church_n can_v in_o no_o state_n or_o condition_n plead_v exemption_n but_o though_o they_o may_v not_o disobey_v the_o state_n summons_n yet_o when_o it_o meddle_v not_o therewith_o in_o a_o separate_a condition_n they_o have_v power_n to_o assemble_v themselves_o as_o they_o can_v and_o as_o need_n require_v take_v care_n to_o do_v it_o in_o such_o way_n as_o will_v make_v it_o least_o jealous_a of_o they_o and_o when_o assemble_v though_o they_o can_v make_v or_o enforce_v no_o canon_n to_o defeat_v any_o innocent_a civil_a constitution_n they_o have_v power_n in_o such_o separate_a state_n to_o make_v other_o which_o be_v consistent_a with_o they_o and_o to_o exercise_v the_o other_o now_o mention_v power_n as_o i_o say_v the_o church_n do_v in_o the_o primitive_a persecution_n but_o when_o it_o become_v incorporate_a and_o be_v oblige_v by_o the_o favour_n and_o privilege_n of_o the_o state_n the_o church_n by_o agreement_n partly_o express_v and_o partly_o by_o tacit_fw-la and_o practical_a carry_v in_o prescription_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o time_n give_v up_o these_o and_o such_o like_a power_n reside_v otherwise_o in_o itself_o to_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n who_o be_v thus_o oblige_o become_v its_o patron_n and_o nurse_n father_n 259._o since_o the_o emperor_n become_v christian_n the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n have_v depend_v upon_o they_o and_o the_o great_a council_n have_v be_v hold_v and_o still_o be_v hold_v at_o their_o pleasure_n be_v the_o observation_n of_o socrates_n in_o the_o preface_n to_o his_o five_o book_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n these_o it_o part_v with_o to_o the_o civil_a power_n for_o its_o greater_n honor._n and_o also_o to_o secure_v it_o of_o its_o good_a behaviour_n be_v tie_v thereby_o to_o a_o compliance_n in_o thing_n which_o it_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o insist_v on_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o religion_n and_o of_o a_o good_a conscience_n and_o to_o prevent_v all_o jar_a and_o interfere_v with_o that_o power_n in_o who_o favour_n and_o society_n it_o find_v so_o great_a benefit_n seek_v herein_o to_o keep_v up_o that_o beneficial_a kindness_n and_o correspondence_n which_o be_v between_o they_o and_o these_o it_o give_v up_o to_o it_o by_o degree_n and_o more_o in_o some_o place_n and_o less_o in_o other_o be_v put_v upon_o part_v with_o less_o at_o first_o and_o with_o more_o afterward_o especial_o after_o the_o papal_a usurpation_n in_o the_o western_a church_n grow_v so_o very_o troublesome_a and_o prejudicial_a to_o prince_n and_o their_o kingdom_n in_o point_n of_o investiture_n appeal_n etc._n etc._n
which_o make_v they_o more_o sensible_a of_o the_o advantage_n of_o have_v these_o power_n quiet_o and_o unconte_o lodge_v in_o their_o own_o hand_n these_o it_o may_v safe_o part_v withal_o during_o the_o incorporation_n as_o retain_v still_o what_o it_o can_v not_o part_v with_o viz_o a_o power_n of_o stand_v by_o all_o necessary_a point_n of_o worship_n and_o doctrine_n and_o of_o do_v what_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o as_o be_v also_o fit_v all_o the_o time_n in_o the_o main_a with_o what_o be_v needful_a in_o point_n of_o discipline_n and_o its_o part_n with_o they_o be_v in_o way_n of_o compromise_n and_o bargain_n as_o a_o grateful_a return_n for_o the_o benefit_n and_o privilege_n of_o its_o enfranchisement_n and_o incorporation_n or_o on_o consideration_n of_o its_o enjoy_n a_o freedom_n not_o only_o of_o exercise_v spiritual_a ministration_n but_o of_o exercise_v they_o in_o the_o way_n of_o a_o incorporate_a church_n viz._n in_o hold_v benefice_n and_o in_o be_v back_v therein_o by_o secular_a jurisdiction_n law_n and_o privilege_n and_o whilst_o these_o benefit_n of_o incorporation_n be_v hold_v on_o in_o favour_n of_o the_o truth_n the_o session_n of_o the_o church_n in_o these_o point_n be_v to_o be_v hold_v on_o too_o and_o not_o to_o be_v resume_v back_o again_o protect_v and_o incorporate_a bishop_n and_o pastor_n must_v be_v content_a to_o claim_v episcopal_a and_o pastoral_a power_n under_o the_o recession_n and_o limitation_n of_o a_o incorporate_a church_n thus_o our_o 37._o article_n and_o supremacy_n canon_n receive_v and_o assert_v the_o ecclesiastical_a supremacy_n of_o our_o king_n which_o contain_v the_o foresay_a church-recessions_a and_o denounce_v excommunication_n ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la to_o those_o that_o 2._o deny_v any_o part_n of_o our_o king_n be_v legal_a supremacy_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n or_o his_o have_v the_o same_o authority_n therein_o as_o the_o godly_a king_n have_v among_o the_o jew_n or_o christian_a emperor_n have_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o according_o in_o our_o form_n of_o ordain_v bishop_n they_o profess_v to_o think_v themselves_o call_v to_o this_o ministration_n according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o order_n of_o this_o realm_n and_o promise_v to_o censure_v and_o punish_v the_o unquiet_a and_o disobedient_a within_o their_o diocese_n according_a to_o such_o authority_n as_o they_o have_v by_o god_n word_n and_o as_o to_o they_o shall_v be_v commit_v by_o the_o ordinance_n of_o this_o realm_n but_o now_o all_o this_o give_v up_o these_o or_o the_o like_a power_n to_o the_o state_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o this_o incorporation_n and_o in_o way_n of_o bargain_n and_o compromise_n or_o other_o abridgement_n of_o its_o own_o ministration_n be_v 1._o with_o a_o salvo_n to_o the_o interest_n of_o religion_n and_o of_o the_o soul_n of_o men._n they_o can_v give_v away_o any_o thing_n to_o make_v themselves_o want_v in_o any_o necessary_a service_n unto_o they_o nor_o part_n with_o their_o power_n of_o minister_a to_o soul_n to_o build_v and_o nurse_v they_o up_o in_o pure_a worship_n doctrine_n and_o practice_n these_o power_n be_v a_o sacred_a depositum_fw-la which_o if_o they_o imbezzle_v or_o yield_v up_o in_o compliance_n they_o be_v false_a to_o god_n and_o to_o man_n soul_n and_o thereby_o betray_v both_o they_o and_o their_o own_o holy_a f●●ction_n and_o their_o act_n also_o be_v nullity_n wherein_o they_o offer_v or_o promise_v to_o do_v the_o same_o for_o they_o be_v act_n against_o a_o antecedent_n obligation_n which_o be_v wicked_a in_o the_o make_n as_o herod_n oath_n 26._o be_v to_o gratify_v herodias_n in_o the_o baptist_n death_n and_o the_o 14._o jew_n conspiracy_n and_o oath_n to_o kill_v st._n paul_n but_o they_o be_v null_a as_o to_o the_o obligation_n of_o performance_n as_o be_v agree_v in_o the_o case_n of_o all_o contract_n and_o promise_n to_o do_v unlawful_a thing_n or_o thing_n evil_a or_o forbid_v in_o themselves_o they_o can_v neither_o discharge_v themselves_o i_o say_v nor_o receive_v any_o discharge_n from_o prince_n of_o exercise_v these_o power_n where_o christ_n require_v they_o shall_v exercise_v they_o for_o the_o service_n of_o religion_n &_o of_o soul_n as_o i_o have_v show_v he_o do_v in_o the_o fore_n mention_v case_n in_o steward_n it_o be_v require_v that_o they_o be_v find_v faithful_a in_o dispense_n out_o these_o ministration_n as_o he_o order_n not_o in_o suppress_v they_o contrary_a to_o order_n 1_o cor._n 4_o 2._o necessity_n be_v lay_v upon_o i_o and_o woe_n be_v to_o i_o be_v here_o the_o scripture_n denunciation_n if_o they_o preach_v not_o the_o gospel_n or_o fail_v trust_o to_o discharge_v that_o ministry_n they_o have_v undertake_v 1_o cor._n 9_o 16._o no_o earthly_a power_n by_o confere_v on_o they_o the_o benefit_n of_o incorporation_n get_v any_o authority_n over_o christ_n minister_n to_o discharge_v they_o of_o minister_a to_o their_o master_n in_o these_o matter_n for_o this_o will_v be_v to_o give_v the_o civil_a power_n which_o ought_v to_o keep_v under_o christ_n a_o power_n over_o he_o it_o will_v turn_v they_o from_o nurse_n father_n who_o by_o give_v it_o a_o civil_a enfranchisement_n undertake_v to_o protect_v the_o true_a religion_n into_o devour_a wolf_n who_o seek_v to_o make_v a_o prey_n of_o it_o it_o be_v express_o declare_v against_o by_o the_o apostle_n who_o appeal_v to_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o mankind_n whether_o they_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o obey_v god_n rather_o than_o man_n act._n 4._o 19_o 20._o and_o will_v leave_v no_o ministration_n of_o true_a gospel_n worship_n and_o doctrine_n under_o any_o christian_a state_n which_o shall_v fall_v from_o any_o necessary_a part_n thereof_o and_o begin_v to_o persecute_v they_o as_o the_o arian_n emperor_n do_v in_o the_o persecution_n they_o raise_v against_o the_o orthodox_n and_o as_o popish_a prince_n do_v in_o like_a violence_n use_v by_o they_o at_o any_o time_n against_o our_o protestant_a brethren_n or_o ancestor_n than_o which_o nothing_o can_v be_v worse_o calculate_v for_o any_o church_n of_o god_n but_o especial_o for_o the_o christian_a church_n which_o be_v to_o continue_v a_o church_n in_o persecution_n and_o to_o bear_v up_o christian_a worship_n and_o doctrine_n by_o due_a ministration_n of_o both_o when_o any_o power_n of_o this_o world_n fall_v from_o protect_v most_o violent_o to_o bear_v they_o down_o and_o this_o in_o all_o time_n have_v be_v the_o opinion_n and_o practice_n of_o god_n faithful_a minister_n when_o the_o state_n which_o by_o incorporation_n shall_v have_v back_v and_o strengthen_v they_o therein_o fall_v to_o discharge_v and_o bar_v they_o of_o their_o ministration_n in_o these_o case_n thus_o god_n faithful_a prophet_n and_o minister_n do_v in_o the_o jewish_a church_n who_o approve_v themselves_o glorious_a confessor_n and_o martyr_n in_o administer_a god_n word_n and_o true_a worship_n when_o the_o state_n fall_v to_o break_v in_o upon_o they_o and_o instead_o of_o back_v and_o protect_v they_o in_o those_o ministration_n according_a to_o the_o purport_n of_o incorporation_n fall_v violent_o to_o discharge_v and_o drive_v they_o from_o officiate_a any_o long_o therein_o thus_o likewise_o athanasius_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n paulus_n of_o constantinople_n and_o other_o bishop_n do_v in_o the_o arian_n persecution_n the_o civil_a state_n have_v then_o receive_v the_o church_n into_o itself_o &_o endow_v it_o with_o civil_a edict_n and_o enfranchisement_n and_o the_o deprivation_n and_o ejection_n of_o these_o bishop_n out_o of_o their_o church_n particular_o of_o the_o great_a athanasius_n be_v with_o state-concurrence_n and_o for_o state-cause_n or_o pretence_n among_o other_o article_n athanasius_n be_v charge_v with_o 25._o contumacy_n against_o the_o emperor_n in_o refuse_v to_o appear_v upon_o his_o edict_n at_o the_o synod_n of_o caesarea_n and_o with_o a_o 35._o treasonable_a design_n to_o stop_v the_o yearly_a transport_n of_o corn_n from_o alexandria_n to_o constantinople_n on_o which_o suggestion_n he_o be_v banish_v to_o tryer_n by_o constantine_n not_o to_o mention_v the_o 22._o accusation_n of_o his_o have_v impose_v on_o the_o egyptian_n a_o tribute_n of_o linen_n cloth_n and_o ibid._n have_v conspire_v with_o one_o philumenus_n against_o the_o emperor_n and_o 686_o have_v treasonable_o correspond_v with_o the_o traitor_n magnentius_n and_o col._n usurp_v the_o imperial_a prerogative_n by_o hold_v the_o festival_n dedication_n of_o the_o great_a church_n of_o alexandria_n without_o the_o emperor_n warrant_n and_o the_o like_a and_o his_o deposition_n and_o gregory_n and_o george_n advancement_n to_o his_o see_n by_o synod_n be_v second_v by_o act_n of_o state_n have_v the_o approbation_n and_o justification_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o assistance_n of_o prefect_n as_o well_o as_o the_o ‖_o imperial_a letter_n violent_o force_v one_o out_o of_o the_o
office_n and_o duty_n as_o to_o their_o room_n spiritual_a do_v appertain_v and_o queen_n 83._o elizabeth_n injunction_n disclaim_v all_o challenge_v of_o any_o authority_n and_o power_n of_o ministry_n of_o divine_a service_n in_o the_o church_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o supremacy_n and_o the_o 37th_o article_n of_o religion_n declare_v that_o thereby_o we_o give_v not_o our_o prince_n the_o minister_a either_o of_o god_n word_n or_o of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o 14._o statute_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n say_v the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n shall_v be_v take_v and_o expound_v in_o such_o form_n as_o be_v set_v forth_o in_o the_o queen_n admonition_n annex_v to_o her_o injunction_n they_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n in_o their_o dominion_n as_o 4._o st._n paul_n say_v but_o that_o be_v as_o king_n not_o as_o priest_n so_o that_o the_o king_n supremacy_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n do_v not_o imply_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n which_o the_o king_n have_v not_o 271._o say_v mr._n mason_n and_o 380._o by_o the_o supremacy_n we_o do_v not_o attribute_v to_o the_o king_n the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n or_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n as_o bishop_n andrews_n observe_v we_o never_o give_v our_o king_n the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n or_o any_o part_n of_o either_o the_o key_n of_o order_n or_o the_o key_n of_o jurisdiction_n pure_o spiritual_a 311._o say_v bishop_n bramhall_n and_o this_o bound_a of_o their_o claim_n and_o pretence_n of_o power_n be_v suitable_a to_o what_o we_o find_v among_o those_o godly_a jewish_a king_n and_o christian_a emperor_n to_o who_o our_o church_n 37._o article_n and_o 2._o canon_n about_o supremacy_n refer_v as_o to_o the_o jew_n it_o appertain_v not_o unto_o thou_o o_o uzziah_n to_o burn_v incense_n unto_o the_o lord_n but_o to_o the_o priest_n that_o be_v consecrate_v thereto_o say_v the_o priest_n to_o king_n uzziah_n when_o he_o will_v assume_v to_o himself_o the_o priest_n office_n for_o which_o god_n miraculous_o smite_v he_o with_o a_o leprosy_n upon_o the_o place_n 2_o chron._n 26._o 16_o 18_o 19_o 20._o and_o the_o lord_n have_v choose_v you_o to_o stand_v before_o he_o to_o serve_v and_o minister_v unto_o he_o and_o to_o burn_v incense_n say_v king_n hezekiah_n to_o the_o levite_n 2_o chron._n 29._o 11._o and_o the_o like_a appear_v of_o the_o godly_a christian_a emperor_n who_o be_v tell_v by_o their_o holy_a bishop_n and_o profess_v of_o themselves_o that_o they_o be_v no_o priest_n and_o that_o their_o power_n of_o empire_n do_v not_o swallow_v up_o the_o sacerdotal_a power_n 840._o god_n have_v entrust_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o your_o hand_n but_o those_o of_o the_o church_n in_o we_o and_o as_o we_o may_v not_o lawful_o take_v upon_o we_o to_o act_v as_o king_n so_o neither_o have_v you_o authority_n o_o emperor_n to_o burn_v incense_n or_o usurp_v the_o priest_n office_n say_v the_o great_a hosius_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n 27._o to_o you_o it_o appertain_v external_o to_o punish_v but_o to_o we_o to_o judge_v and_o determine_v what_o be_v heretical_a and_o impious_a say_v elusius_fw-la and_o sylvanus_n and_o the_o other_o bishop_n to_o the_o same_o constantius_n 18._o the_o royal_a purple_n make_v man_n emperor_n but_o it_o do_v not_o make_v they_o priest_n say_v st._n ambrose_n to_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n as_o christian_n and_o godly_a emperor_n they_o use_v their_o imperial_a power_n and_o sovereignty_n about_o church-matter_n but_o that_o be_v not_o privative_a to_o deny_v the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n or_o to_o bereave_v they_o of_o their_o power_n but_o cumulative_a to_o add_v the_o imperial_a power_n which_o be_v of_o another_o kind_n to_o the_o spiritual_a thereby_o to_o back_v their_o act_n and_o to_o make_v they_o bind_v the_o fast_o thus_o when_o they_o send_v count_n candidianus_n to_o the_o great_a council_n of_o ephesus_n the_o emperor_n theodosius_n and_o valentinian_n declare_v in_o their_o council_n letter_n to_o the_o council_n that_o it_o be_v to_o keep_v good_a order_n and_o to_o see_v fair_a debate_n but_o with_o order_n not_o to_o intermeddle_v in_o determine_v question_n of_o faith_n and_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n which_o say_v they_o be_v lawful_a only_o for_o the_o bishop_n and_o when_o the_o emperor_n marcian_n come_v in_o person_n at_o the_o pass_v the_o definition_n of_o the_o great_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n bin._n it_o be_v not_o as_o he_o tell_v they_o in_o his_o speech_n to_o the_o council_n to_o make_v demonstration_n of_o his_o own_o power_n therein_o but_o to_o give_v great_a firmness_n to_o what_o they_o have_v do_v in_o the_o exercise_n of_o they_o which_o he_o do_v by_o 361._o ratify_v the_o same_o by_o secular_a penalty_n as_o by_o banishment_n of_o citizen_n disband_v of_o soldier_n and_o deposition_n of_o clery_n and_o by_o other_o punishment_n after_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o council_n have_v be_v read_v and_o the_o bishop_n have_v own_v and_o subscribe_v the_o same_o before_o he_o when_o the_o imperial_a purple_n come_v to_o confirm_v a_o pastoral_n act_n it_o give_v a_o new_a authority_n to_o that_o which_o have_v authority_n in_o itself_o before_o or_o as_o justinian_n 3._o speak_v in_o his_o confirmation_n of_o the_o episcopal_a sentence_n or_o anathemaon_n zoaras_n which_o say_v he_o have_v a_o validity_n from_o itself_o or_o authenticalness_n of_o its_o own_o the_o crown_n make_v yet_o more_o valid_a or_o of_o more_o authority_n by_o add_v to_o it_o a_o secular_a penalty_n the_o episcopal_a or_o spiritual_a authority_n be_v by_o too_o many_o unjust_o slight_v and_o therefore_o the_o secular_a authority_n be_v both_o humble_o call_v in_o and_o pious_o come_v in_o to_o its_o help_n since_o those_o irreligious_a contemner_n of_o the_o spiritual_a power_n will_v stand_v more_o in_o awe_n of_o the_o secular_a 70._o come_v in_o by_o their_o secular_a authority_n to_o help_v and_o back_o the_o church_n in_o those_o thing_n wherein_o man_n will_v otherwise_o contemn_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n as_o the_o father_n express_v it_o in_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n so_o that_o the_o imperial_a power_n even_o whilst_o employ_v about_o church-ministrations_a all_o the_o time_n suppose_v but_o do_v not_o swallow_v up_o the_o pastoral_a power_n nor_o do_v its_o ecclesiastical_a supremacy_n lie_v nor_o be_v ever_o think_v so_o to_o do_v either_o by_o our_o church_n or_o by_o those_o time_n whereto_o it_o refer_v in_o their_o be_v vest_v with_o or_o have_v a_o sovereign_a disposal_n of_o the_o power_n of_o order_n but_o 2._o second_o it_o lie_v 1._o first_o in_o retain_v their_o civil_a power_n over_o all_o person_n whether_o layman_n or_o ecclesiastic_n the_o civil_a state_n be_v first_o in_o be_v and_o man_n be_v subject_n of_o the_o state_n when_o christianity_n come_v to_o be_v propose_v to_o they_o and_o plant_v among_o they_o par._n the_o church_n be_v in_o the_o commonwealth_n not_o the_o commonwealth_n in_o the_o church_n as_o optatus_n say_v and_o when_o man_n become_v member_n or_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n they_o do_v not_o thereby_o cease_v to_o be_v subject_n of_o the_o state_n or_o owe_v ever_o the_o less_o duty_n unto_o it_o let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a unto_o the_o high_a power_n be_v mean_v of_o ecclesiastic_n as_o well_o as_o other_o it_o take_v in_o all_o loc_n though_o a_o apostle_n though_o a_o evangelist_n though_o a_o prophet_n or_o whosoever_o else_o as_o st._n chrysostom_n note_n and_o therefore_o prince_n may_v lay_v their_o civil_a command_n and_o inflict_v their_o civil_a punishment_n upon_o ecclesiastic_n as_o well_o as_o upon_o their_o other_o subject_n they_o may_v put_v they_o under_o fines_n or_o imprisonment_n or_o banish_v they_o out_o of_o their_o dominion_n or_o any_o part_n thereof_o as_o 2._o claudius_n do_v the_o jew_n from_o rome_n or_o as_o 9_o domitian_n do_v st._n john_n into_o patmos_n where_o he_o write_v his_o revelation_n and_o as_o constantius_n and_o valence_n do_v the_o orthodox_n bishop_n in_o the_o arian_n persecution_n and_o true_a pastor_n be_v bind_v to_o submit_v to_o this_o like_a as_o other_o subject_n be_v either_o from_o heathen_a or_o heretical_a emperor_n and_o even_o in_o hard_a and_o unjust_a case_n as_o in_o the_o foresay_a instance_n and_o ox._n if_o any_o under_o sentence_n of_o banishment_n inflict_v on_o certain_a person_n not_o on_o the_o whole_a cause_n return_v into_o his_o own_o country_n without_o leave_n of_o the_o civil_a power_n if_o be_v catch_v he_o suffer_v for_o it_o he_o die_v not_o as_o a_o christian_a but_o as_o a_o malefactor_n say_v st._n cyprian_n so_o that_o bishop_n and_o minister_n be_v no_o exempt_a person_n but_o be_v to_o own_o their_o king_n as_o their_o civil_a sovereign_n and_o be_v as_o much_o bind_v to_o pay_v obedience_n to_o their_o civil_a law_n and_o be_v
bishop_n and_o head_n of_o union_n in_o those_o diocese_n according_a to_o his_o rule_n and_o principle_n of_o union_n and_o then_o how_o shall_v a_o mere_a command_n of_o state_n dissolve_v the_o tie_n make_v by_o he_o or_o break_v communion_n betwixt_o their_o bishop_n and_o they_o whilst_o christ_n by_o conscionable_a obligation_n of_o church_n unity_n bid_v they_o adhere_v to_o their_o bishop_n and_o keep_v one_o with_o he_o must_v they_o give_v ear_n to_o the_o state_n that_o bid_v they_o divide_v from_o he_o i_o think_v on_o second_o thought_n he_o will_v not_o make_v church_n union_n or_o the_o dependence_n of_o people_n on_o their_o bishop_n so_o unsettled_a or_o precarious_a a_o thing_n as_o either_o to_o have_v no_o fix_a and_o conscionable_a principle_n engage_v and_o hold_v all_o good_a member_n thereto_o of_o its_o own_o or_o to_o have_v it_o in_o the_o power_n of_o a_o secular_a state_n when_o it_o please_v to_o set_v they_o aside_o and_o over-rule_v they_o chap._n iii_o remark_n on_o the_o precede_a account_n of_o the_o force_n of_o state-deprivations_a and_o instance_n of_o deprivation_n allege_v to_o the_o contrary_a consider_v and_o clear_v up_o from_o what_o i_o have_v say_v in_o the_o forego_n chapter_n about_o the_o power_n of_o the_o civil_a state_n and_o the_o effect_n of_o its_o deprivation_n i_o think_v it_o may_v appear_v that_o the_o bishop_n and_o minister_n of_o christ_n continue_v still_o invest_v with_o their_o ministerial_a power_n and_o can_v receive_v no_o discharge_n from_o the_o exercise_n thereof_o in_o the_o formentioned_a case_n by_o any_o state_n deprivation_n and_o of_o this_o i_o observe_v from_o what_o have_v be_v hitherto_o discourse_v 1._o first_o that_o this_o be_v not_o to_o deny_v the_o civil_a power_n the_o cognizance_n of_o bishop_n and_o minister_n in_o civil_a matter_n allegiance_n it_o be_v true_a be_v a_o civil_a matter_n and_o most_o near_o concern_v the_o civil_a peace_n indeed_o it_o be_v not_o only_o civil_a but_o also_o religious_a for_o when_o man_n be_v require_v to_o swear_v it_o and_o in_o all_o church_n to_o pray_v conformable_o to_o it_o solemn_z oath_n and_o prayer_n be_v most_o sacred_a and_o religious_a acts._n and_o allegiance_n in_o itself_o be_v a_o moral_a duty_n for_o due_a payment_n whereof_o all_o stand_v answerable_a to_o god_n in_o the_o last_o judgement_n as_o well_o as_o a_o civil_a or_o state-duty_n for_o which_o they_o be_v answerable_a to_o the_o state_n in_o judicature_n of_o this_o world_n but_o it_o be_v such_o a_o matter_n of_o religion_n i_o say_v as_o be_v also_o a_o civil_a matter_n subject_n to_o civil_a cognizance_n or_o a_o point_n of_o state_n too_o and_o if_o this_o be_v refuse_v to_o a_o rightful_a state_n it_o be_v not_o only_o a_o offence_n against_o morality_n and_o religion_n which_o spiritual_a judicature_n and_o synod_n may_v punish_v with_o canonical_a deposition_n but_o also_o a_o offence_n against_o the_o state_n which_o such_o rightful_a state_n may_v punish_v by_o state_n punishment_n as_o it_o may_v all_o other_o state_n offence_n and_o in_o ecclesiastic_n when_o they_o be_v guilty_a thereof_o as_o in_o all_o other_o person_n and_o among_o these_o punishment_n by_o deprivation_n though_o not_o of_o mere_a spiritual_a power_n the_o state_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o take_v away_o those_o mere_a spiritual_a power_n which_o it_o never_o give_v yet_o of_o all_o that_o be_v temporal_a in_o church-ministrations_a so_o as_o that_o such_o refuser_n shall_v no_o long_o hold_v benefice_n and_o preferment_n or_o state_n endowment_n yea_o and_o even_o as_o to_o those_o mere_a spiritual_a power_n it_o may_v make_v they_o of_o themselves_o to_o forbear_v any_o further_a exercise_n thereof_o to_o keep_v state-favor_n and_o endowment_n to_o the_o church_n when_o their_o deprivation_n be_v in_o a_o case_n that_o concern_v only_o their_o own_o personal_a right_n and_o privilege_n but_o not_o the_o truth_n or_o cause_n of_o christ_n as_o be_v before_o observe_v but_o if_o at_o any_o time_n or_o in_o any_o kingdom_n this_o shall_v be_v refuse_v to_o a_o usurp_a state_n which_o have_v no_o legal_a right_n but_o which_o call_v for_o this_o allegiance_n oath_n and_o solemn_a prayer_n and_o religious_a service_n conformable_a thereto_o against_o he_o who_o have_v the_o right_n then_o such_o refusal_n be_v neither_o a_o religious_a nor_o a_o civil_a offence_n neither_o against_o god_n nor_o god_n vicegerent_n divine_a or_o humane_a law_n but_o a_o due_a obedience_n to_o both_o and_o this_o bring_v on_o the_o case_n of_o all_o the_o foresay_a immorality_n damnify_v religion_n and_o endanger_v soul_n wherein_o faithful_a bishop_n and_o clergy_n whatever_o they_o incur_v by_o stand_v to_o their_o spiritual_a ministration_n must_v not_o let_v they_o fall_v ●n_v regard_n to_o any_o deprivation_n of_o usurp_a power_n nay_o nor_o in_o regard_n to_o the_o most_o rightful_a state_n shall_v they_o issue_v out_o against_o they_o state-deprivations_a to_o stop_v their_o ministration_n against_o any_o such_o like_a immorality_n or_o other_o irreligious_a and_o endanger_v way_n and_o this_o limitation_n of_o the_o regard_n they_o ought_v to_o have_v to_o his_o deprivation_n be_v not_o to_o deny_v the_o rightful_a civil_a sovereign_n any_o part_n of_o his_o just_a power_n over_o ecclesiastic_n but_o only_o to_o deny_v he_o such_o a_o power_n as_o will_v leave_v our_o saviour_n christ_n himself_o who_o be_v his_o master_n as_o well_o as_o they_o ●o_o have_v no_o power_n over_o they_o or_o such_o a_o power_n as_o shall_v enable_v he_o to_o discharge_v they_o of_o what_o christ_n have_v give_v in_o charge_n to_o they_o to_o take_v away_o what_o power_n he_o confer_v or_o to_o loose_v what_o he_o have_v tie_v on_o but_o under_o all_o this_o discharge_n of_o their_o foresay_a ministration_n notwithstanding_o his_o inhibition_n and_o deprivation_n it_o allow_v the_o civil_a magistrate_n as_o much_o power_n over_o their_o person_n to_o mulct_v banish_v or_o put_v they_o to_o death_n on_o just_a cause_n as_o they_o be_v his_o subject_n as_o over_o any_o other_o and_o to_o have_v power_n also_o over_o the_o mix_a way_n of_o administration_n so_o as_o to_o be_v able_a to_o deprive_v they_o though_o not_o of_o all_o exercise_n of_o their_o spiritual_a power_n yet_o from_o hold_v or_o exercise_v they_o with_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n effect_n and_o privilege_n after_o the_o way_n of_o a_o incorporate_a church_n and_o to_o have_v those_o other_o forementioned_a prerogative_n of_o convene_a synod_n pass_v canon_n send_v prohibition_n to_o stop_v any_o process_n in_o prejudice_n of_o the_o prerogative_n or_o of_o the_o law_n etc._n etc._n which_o for_o the_o favour_n and_o continuance_n of_o those_o secular_a mixture_n have_v accrue_v by_o incorporation_n and_o belong_v to_o christian_a king_n and_o these_o thing_n which_o be_v allow_v be_v as_o much_o as_o any_o of_o they_o can_v claim_v of_o ecclesiastic_n as_o they_o be_v king_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n those_o thing_n which_o be_v deny_v be_v such_o as_o they_o will_v abhor_v to_o challenge_v or_o desire_n who_o will_v own_o any_o subjection_n to_o christ_n or_o bind_v their_o pretension_n as_o christian_a king_n 2._o second_o nor_o be_v it_o to_o set_v the_o church_n above_o the_o state_n as_o the_o papal_a usurpation_n pretend_v to_o do_v but_o only_o to_o set_v almighty_a god_n and_o his_o bless_a son_n jesus_n christ_n above_o it_o not_o leave_v subject_n whether_o laic_n or_o ecclesiastic_n in_o compliance_n with_o any_o the_o most_o rightful_a state_n to_o disobey_v god_n nor_o minister_n to_o let_v fall_v any_o service_n and_o ministration_n of_o religion_n or_o cure_v of_o soul_n which_o christ_n call_v they_o to_o exercise_v yea_o not_o only_a when_o the_o state_n be_v consent_v but_o when_o it_o gain-says_a it_o and_o do_v all_o it_o can_v either_o to_o disable_v or_o discourage_v they_o from_o it_o he_o not_o have_v think_v fit_a to_o stand_v to_o the_o courtesy_n of_o any_o civil_a state_n whether_o or_o no_o the_o ministry_n of_o save_v soul_n shall_v be_v prosecute_v and_o whether_o he_o shall_v be_v serve_v and_o have_v a_o church_n on_o earth_n but_o at_o the_o same_o time_n it_o set_v god_n and_o religion_n above_o their_o power_n it_o subject_n all_o both_o laic_n and_o ecclesiastic_n to_o the_o same_o in_o other_o thing_n allow_v every_o rightful_a civil_a state_n the_o chief_a civil_a power_n over_o all_o ecclesiastical_a person_n and_o the_o chief_a civil_a power_n over_o all_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n so_o far_o forth_o and_o so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v mix_v and_o compound_v with_o civil_a benefice_n and_o jurisdiction_n and_o a_o civil_a power_n to_o compel_v church_n man_n by_o civil_a penalty_n to_o do_v the_o duty_n of_o their_o spiritual_a ministration_n and_o to_o hold_v they_o under_o a_o necessity_n of_o not_o resist_v by_o arm_n but_o of_o
not_o go_v over_o to_o the_o mutineer_n or_o than_o a_o king_n and_o his_o loyal_a subject_n will_v be_v in_o a_o kingdom_n for_o not_o turn_v over_o and_o submit_v to_o the_o rebel_n but_o as_o the_o anti-bishop_n and_o their_o party_n make_v the_o schism_n by_o depart_v from_o the_o lawful_a head_n and_o true_a body_n they_o must_v amend_v it_o by_o return_v to_o it_o and_o they_o stand_v answerable_a to_o god_n so_o far_o as_o i_o see_v for_o all_o the_o gild_n and_o sad_a consequence_n and_o effect_n thereof_o if_o they_o refuse_v so_o to_o do_v 2._o second_o the_o unity_n of_o any_o church_n do_v not_o go_v with_o the_o great_a number_n but_o when_o a_o schism_n be_v make_v by_o a_o defection_n of_o member_n from_o their_o spiritual_a head_n and_o set_v up_o of_o anti-bishop_n the_o schism_n be_v still_o the_o same_o how_o numerous_a soever_o the_o member_n be_v that_o break_v off_o for_o break_v off_o from_o their_o rightful_a head_n and_o governor_n as_o i_o have_v show_v make_v the_o schism_n and_o then_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o number_n of_o those_o who_o do_v so_o can_v only_o make_v it_o a_o great_a schism_n number_n in_o schism_n or_o in_o any_o other_o ill_a thing_n may_v add_v confidence_n and_o leave_v less_o hope_n of_o reclaim_v those_o who_o be_v engage_v therein_o for_o multitude_n as_o the_o ancient_a author_n of_o the_o roboam_n comment_n on_o st._n matthew_n print_v among_o the_o work_n of_o st._n chrysostom_n observe_v be_v the_o mother_n of_o sedition_n and_o of_o contumacy_n and_o incureableness_n therein_o whereas_o paucity_n or_o smallness_n of_o their_o number_n be_v the_o mistress_n of_o discipline_n but_o it_o do_v not_o lessen_v the_o gild_n nor_o alter_v the_o nature_n of_o it_o but_o schismatic_n be_v answerable_a for_o their_o schism_n be_v they_o never_o so_o many_o of_o they_o that_o which_o make_v any_o meeting_n of_o orthodox_n christian_n offer_v up_o a_o regular_a and_o establish_a service_n to_o be_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v their_o meeting_n under_o one_o who_o officiate_n therein_o according_a to_o their_o own_o bishop_n approbation_n and_o allowance_n for_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o body_n lie_v in_o keep_v one_o with_o he_o and_o the_o catholic_n and_o canonical_a rule_n as_o i_o shall_v 5._o afterward_o show_v of_o keep_v one_o with_o they_o be_v by_o celebrate_v all_o public_a office_n and_o divine_a service_n with_o their_o allowance_n and_o approbation_n so_o that_o where_o any_o presbyter_n or_o deacon_n perform_v the_o establish_a office_n according_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o their_o own_o orthodox_n and_o rightful_a bishop_n they_o officiate_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n though_o it_o be_v but_o to_o a_o few_o and_o to_o those_o meet_v in_o corner_n and_o where_o any_o other_o celebrate_v their_o office_n without_o the_o licence_n and_o against_o the_o approbation_n of_o their_o own_o orthodox_n and_o rightful_a bishop_n they_o officiate_v in_o a_o schism_n though_o it_o be_v among_o the_o full_a congregation_n and_o with_o secular_a encouragement_n and_o in_o the_o public_a authorize_v church_n the_o have_v their_o orthodox_n and_o true_a bishop_n approbation_n and_o concurrence_n make_v they_o no_o schismatic_n and_o their_o meeting_n no_o conventicle_n when_o conventicle_n note_n not_o a_o small_a or_o secret_a but_o a_o schismatical_a assembly_n as_o it_o always_o do_v when_o it_o be_v a_o word_n of_o infamy_n and_o reproach_n trullo_n the_o canon_n count_v it_o a_o conventicle_n when_o any_o minister_n in_o a_o private_a oratory_n against_o the_o allowance_n and_o approbation_n of_o he_o who_o be_v chief_a priest_n in_o the_o country_n say_v balsamon_n on_o the_o canon_n forbid_v ministration_n contrary_a to_o the_o bishop_n mind_n and_o approbation_n and_o it_o have_v not_o be_v so_o strange_a a_o sight_n in_o the_o world_n as_o every_o good_a mind_n will_v wish_v it_o have_v to_o see_v schismatic_n from_o the_o body_n make_v a_o more_o numerous_a party_n than_o those_o who_o keep_v unite_v to_o it_o in_o the_o division_n of_o israel_n from_o judah_n under_o jeroboam_n the_o israelite_n who_o fall_v off_o from_o the_o one_o altar_n at_o jerusalem_n to_o other_o altar_n of_o their_o own_o erect_n be_v guilty_a of_o the_o schism_n though_o they_o who_o stick_v to_o that_o one_o altar_n be_v but_o two_o tribe_n and_o those_o defector_n who_o break_v off_o from_o it_o were_z ten._n the_o arian_n as_o they_o be_v heretic_n for_o subvert_v the_o true_a faith_n so_o likewise_o be_v they_o all_o schismatic_n by_o break_v off_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o their_o rightful_a bishop_n as_o of_o athanasius_n at_o alexandria_n of_o paulus_n at_o constantinople_n of_o lucius_n at_o adrianople_n of_o asclepas_n at_o gaza_n of_o marcellus_n at_o ancyra_n etc._n etc._n and_o by_o enjoin_v all_o every_o where_o to_o break_v communion_n with_o they_o and_o to_o receive_v and_o communicate_v with_o those_o anti-bishop_n who_o they_o have_v set_v up_o against_o they_o and_o in_o the_o patriarchate_o of_o alexandria_n more_o particular_o the_o meletian_o who_o before_o have_v make_v a_o schism_n in_o that_o church_n fall_v into_o their_o party_n as_o etc._n schism_n to_o maintain_v itself_o too_o often_o yea_o always_o say_v st._n jerom_n take_v up_o with_o and_o end_n in_o heresy_n but_o these_o arian_n who_o make_v the_o schism_n be_v abundant_o more_o numerous_a than_o those_o faithful_a christian_n who_o keep_v to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n the_o whole_a world_n at_o one_o time_n gro●ning_v as_o col._n st._n jerome_n say_v and_o admire_v to_o see_v itself_o turn_v arian_n again_o the_o donatist_n be_v notorious_o guilty_a of_o the_o schism_n make_v in_o the_o african_a church_n but_o yet_o when_o they_o overrun_v africa_n they_o can_v glory_v and_o vaunt_v themselves_o in_o their_o diffuseness_n and_o in_o the_o greatness_n of_o their_o number_n so_o that_o schism_n be_v compatible_a with_o the_o great_a numerousness_n of_o adherent_n if_o that_o number_n be_v of_o man_n combine_v together_o against_o their_o orthodox_n righful_a bishop_n and_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n with_o the_o small_a number_n if_o that_o number_n be_v of_o member_n that_o constant_o adhere_v to_o they_o and_o this_o may_v likewise_o appear_v from_o those_o similitude_n of_o the_o unity_n betwixt_o the_o head_n and_o member_n the_o tree_n and_o branch_n etc._n etc._n whereby_o the_o ancient_n set_v out_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n for_o be_v the_o branch_n more_o or_o few_o which_o keep_v unite_v to_o the_o body_n they_o make_v the_o tree_n and_o be_v the_o member_n few_o or_o many_o which_o stick_v on_o to_o the_o head_n or_o live_a trunk_n they_o make_v the_o body_n and_o so_o be_v their_o number_n great_a or_o less_o do_v the_o adherer_n to_o the_o orthodox_n rightful_a bishop_n make_v the_o one_o church_n indeed_o as_o the_o root_n have_v the_o branch_n so_o the_o bishop_n have_v the_o clergy_n and_o people_n virtual_o in_o himself_o that_o be_v as_o he_o get_v proselyte_n he_o can_v make_v they_o christian_n and_o out_o of_o these_o he_o can_v ordain_v presbyter_n and_o deacon_n so_o to_o 48._o head_n a_o body_n of_o clergy_n and_o people_n profess_v christianity_n which_o according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o primitive_a father_n be_v a_o christian_a church_n and_o thus_o a_o bishop_n though_o appear_v only_o with_o a_o few_o member_n about_o he_o will_v make_v a_o church_n and_o be_v qualify_v due_o to_o spread_v it_o and_o to_o make_v it_o more_o numerous_a as_o the_o bless_a apostle_n do_v when_o they_o set_v up_o at_o first_o to_o gather_v church_n and_o as_o the_o first_o bishop_n do_v also_o who_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o first_o convert_v and_o ordain_v at_o the_o head_n of_o they_o to_o be_v bishop_n of_o those_o who_o ox._n shall_v afterward_o believe_v so_o that_o the_o reduce_v of_o a_o orthodox_n rightful_a bishop_n to_o a_o comparative_o little_a number_n of_o adherent_n will_v not_o hinder_v he_o and_o his_o follower_n from_o make_v up_o the_o one_o body_n and_o be_v the_o one_o church_n and_o as_o such_o our_o lord-will_a give_v ear_n to_o they_o as_o st._n cyprian_n observe_v though_o they_o be_v but_o two_o or_o three_o gather_v together_o in_o his_o name_n rather_o than_o to_o a_o great_a number_n of_o schismatical_a divider_n to_o this_o promise_n of_o his_o presence_n with_o two_o or_o three_o or_o such_o small_a number_n our_o lord_n premise_n say_v 112_o he_o that_o these_o two_o or_o three_o be_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o preserve_v the_o concord_n of_o peace_n 113._o and_o show_v himself_o thereby_o to_o be_v more_o with_o two_o or_o three_o such_o petitioner_n than_o with_o a_o great_a number_n of_o schismatical_a divider_n and_o if_o number_v of_o adherent_n will_v not_o much_o less_o
to_o spiritual_a power_n and_o to_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n in_o their_o own_o church_n for_o ordination_n as_o well_o as_o baptism_n be_v not_o only_o in_o respect_n to_o the_o church_n of_o such_o a_o place_n but_o to_o christ_n church_n at_o large_a limitation_n there_o be_v as_o to_o the_o exercise_n of_o these_o power_n as_o may_v make_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o order_n and_o union_n and_o in_o care_n of_o unity_n and_o peace_n bishop_n and_o priest_n of_o any_o church_n must_v observe_v these_o in_o act_v episcopal_o or_o sacerdotal_o whilst_o they_o converse_v in_o other_o church_n but_o have_v any_o where_o receive_v a_o lawful_a and_o canonical_a ordination_n they_o be_v to_o be_v own_v as_o minister_n of_o christ_n wheresoever_o they_o come_v and_o need_v no_o more_o to_o be_v ordain_v than_o other_o member_n need_v to_o be_v baeptise_v over_o again_o so_o that_o they_o be_v schismatic_n and_o break_v this_o unity_n of_o the_o body_n appoint_v to_o be_v keep_v up_o between_o all_o particular_a church_n and_o their_o member_n who_o reject_v the_o member_n or_o canonical_a minister_n of_o any_o other_o orthodox_n church_n as_o they_o do_v who_o unchurch_n they_o or_o deny_v communion_n to_o their_o member_n unless_o they_o will_v submit_v to_o unrighteous_a claim_n and_o usurpation_n or_o join_v in_o unlawful_a worship_n or_o erroneous_a doctrine_n or_o who_o reject_v their_o lawful_a and_o canonical_a minister_n unless_o they_o will_v receive_v new_a order_n which_o be_v so_o many_o breach_n of_o that_o brotherhood_n which_o christ_n have_v ordain_v among_o church_n and_o be_v the_o make_n of_o a_o schism_n in_o the_o catholic_n church_n 2._o all_o orthodox_n bishop_n and_o church_n be_v to_o refuse_v each_o other_o schismatic_n and_o excommunicate_n as_o if_o they_o be_v their_o own_o schismatic_n or_o excommunicate_n and_o upon_o their_o reconciliation_n and_o reunion_n to_o their_o own_o church_n to_o let_v they_o in_o and_o receive_v they_o again_o as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v immediate_o reconcile_v and_o reunite_v to_o themselves_o which_o way_n of_o mutual_o receive_v or_o reject_v of_o privilege_v or_o debar_v member_n make_v that_o unity_n of_o discipline_n which_o by_o order_n of_o christ_n and_o according_a to_o the_o sense_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o primitive_a father_n be_v one_o great_a way_n of_o compact_v the_o vast_a number_n of_o christian_a society_n into_o one_o body_n or_o of_o keep_v up_o the_o unity_n of_o christ_n church_n 39_o all_o we_o christian_n be_v incorporate_v or_o make_v one_o body_n say_v tertullian_n as_o by_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o same_o religion_n and_o the_o covenant_n of_o hope_n so_o by_o the_o unity_n of_o discipline_n and_o when_o any_o one_o bishop_n or_o church_n have_v do_v any_o thing_n 56._o we_o be_v all_o thought_n to_o have_v do_v the_o same_o by_o appear_v associate_v and_o unite_v in_o the_o same_o consent_n of_o censure_v and_o discipline_n say_v the_o clergy_n of_o rome_n to_o st._n cyprian_n 1._o they_o be_v to_o refuse_v each_o other_o schismatic_n as_o if_o they_o be_v their_o own_o schismatic_n for_o as_o the_o hold_n on_o civil_a communion_n with_o traitor_n be_v judge_v treason_n so_o be_v hold_v on_o spiritual_a communion_n with_o schismatic_n judge_v schism_n they_o must_v take_v part_n and_o keep_v one_o with_o the_o church_n and_o so_o whilst_o the_o breach_n last_v must_v disclaim_v and_o keep_v off_o from_o those_o separate_a member_n who_o stand_v divide_v and_o break_v off_o from_o it_o avoid_v those_o that_o cause_n division_n as_o st._n paul_n order_n rom._n 16._o 17._o according_o st._n basil_n let_v the_o neocaesareans_n know_v when_o they_o seem_v about_o to_o break_v and_o divide_v from_o he_o and_o from_o his_o church_n of_o caesarea_n that_o fin_n if_o any_o avoid_v or_o break_v off_o from_o his_o communion_n they_o will_v be_v break_v off_o withal_o from_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o hold_v communion_n with_o he_o 33._o we_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v communion_n in_o prayer_n with_o any_o heretic_n or_o schismatic_a say_v the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n 2._o nor_o ought_v they_o who_o be_v not_o of_o the_o assembly_n of_o one_o church_n to_o be_v receive_v or_o allow_v to_o assemble_v in_o another_o church_n say_v the_o council_n of_o antioch_n ap._n if_o he_o who_o be_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v in_o one_o church_n be_v receive_v without_o commendatory_a letter_n in_o another_o let_v both_o he_o who_o be_v receive_v and_o his_o receiver_n be_v excommunicate_v say_v the_o apostolical_a canon_n 80._o whosoever_o say_v st._n cyprian_n speak_v of_o the_o schism_n of_o felicissimus_n who_o have_v schismatical_o break_v off_o and_o divide_v from_o himself_o shall_v join_v himself_o to_o his_o conspiracy_n and_o faction_n may_v know_v that_o he_o can_v no_o long_o communicate_v with_o we_o in_o the_o church_n since_o he_o thereby_o voluntary_o choose_v rather_o to_o separate_v himself_o from_o the_o church_n 2._o they_o be_v to_o refuse_v each_o other_o excommunicate_n as_o if_o they_o be_v their_o own_o excommunicate_n for_o whatsoever_o be_v this_o way_n regular_o bind_v in_o earth_n our_o lord_n declare_v shall_v be_v ratify_v or_o stand_v bind_v in_o heaven_n mat._n 18._o 18._o &_o jo._n 20_o 23._o and_o if_o it_o be_v confirm_v in_o heaven_n it_o must_v stand_v good_a and_o not_o be_v thwart_v or_o reverse_v by_o any_o of_o his_o follower_n here_o on_o earth_n when_o the_o member_n among_o any_o society_n of_o christian_n for_o their_o 6._o disorderly_a walk_n and_o 17._o not_o hear_v of_o the_o church_n be_v cast_v out_o thereof_o they_o be_v throw_v not_o only_o out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o that_o place_n but_o out_o of_o christ_n church_n at_o large_a whereof_o all_o other_o church_n be_v member_n or_o out_o of_o all_o christian_a church_n into_o the_o state_n of_o heathen_n and_o publican_n as_o our_o lord_n say_v mat._n 18._o 17._o according_o synesius_n bishop_n of_o ptolemais_n in_o his_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n denounce_v against_o andronicus_n and_o thoas_n and_o their_o complice_n say_v 58._o let_v no_o temple_n of_o god_n be_v open_a to_o they_o but_o let_v every_o religious_a place_n or_o chappel_n be_v shut_v against_o they_o and_o st._n basil_n bid_v the_o neocaesareans_n take_v heed_n how_o they_o break_v communion_n with_o he_o 75._o because_o after_o once_o he_o shall_v exclude_v they_o no_o other_o catholic_n church_n which_o all_o own_a he_o and_o hold_v communion_n with_o he_o will_v any_o long_o own_o or_o communicate_v with_o they_o till_o they_o be_v regular_o absolve_v and_o reconcile_v again_o all_o other_o bishop_n and_o sister-churche_n be_v bind_v to_o refuse_v and_o repel_v such_o excommunicate_n as_o they_o come_v to_o their_o knowledge_n thus_o synesius_n require_v of_o all_o sister-churche_n and_o of_o all_o christian_n to_o shun_v the_o communion_n of_o andronicus_n and_o thoas_n and_o their_o adherent_n and_o 2_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o communicate_v with_o person_n out_o of_o communion_n say_v the_o council_n of_o antioch_n 13._o if_o any_o either_o of_o clergy_n or_o laity_n be_v excommunicate_v by_o his_o own_o bishop_n let_v none_o else_o receive_v he_o to_o communion_n till_o his_o own_o bishop_n have_v receive_v he_o again_o or_o a_o synod_n have_v clear_v he_o say_v the_o father_n of_o that_o council_n again_o and_o 5._o concern_v those_o either_o of_o the_o clergy_n or_o laity_n who_o be_v exclude_v from_o communion_n by_o the_o bishop_n which_o be_v in_o every_o province_n let_v the_o sentence_n be_v valid_a according_a to_o the_o 13._o canon_n which_o decree_n that_o they_o who_o be_v cast_v out_o by_o some_o shall_v not_o be_v admit_v by_o other_o say_v the_o great_a council_n of_o nice_a thus_o when_o any_o person_n or_o church_n be_v schismatical_o or_o by_o mean_n of_o just_a censure_n and_o penalty_n out_o of_o communion_n with_o one_o orthodox_n church_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o catholic_n communion_n and_o accord_n among_o church_n according_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n ought_v they_o to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o all_o orthodox_n church_n and_o if_o any_o either_o christian_n or_o church_n will_v still_o hold_v on_o communion_n with_o such_o person_n by_o the_o foresay_a rule_n of_o union_n and_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n they_o be_v thereby_o make_v like_o unto_o they_o and_o turn_v maker_n of_o a_o schism_n and_o be_v to_o lose_v the_o benefit_n of_o communion_n themselves_o 8._o if_o any_o say_v synesius_n in_o his_o excommunicatory_a sentence_n of_o andronicus_n etc._n etc._n shall_v contemn_v our_o church_n as_o be_v the_o church_n of_o a_o small_a city_n receive_v those_o who_o it_o have_v cast_v out_o as_o if_o observance_n be_v not_o due_a to_o it_o by_o reason_n of_o its_o poverty_n let_v
but_o none_o at_o all_o this_o ordination_n of_o novatian_n against_o cornelius_n entail_v a_o great_a division_n and_o ox._n competition_n of_o opposite_a head_n upon_o the_o church_n and_o the_o novatian_o as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o sozomen_n can_v produce_v a_o succession_n of_o bishop_n set_v up_o to_o head_n their_o party_n against_o the_o catholic_n bishop_n in_o the_o great_a church_n but_o yet_o except_v st._n cyprian_n and_o the_o africane_n who_o 1._o st._n basil_n note_n to_o have_v strain_v the_o effect_n of_o schism_n too_o far_o and_o to_o have_v outshoot_v the_o mark_n in_o these_o point_n though_o these_o be_v anti-bishop_n the_o catholic_n church_n do_v not_o look_v upon_o they_o and_o the_o priest_n ordain_v by_o they_o as_o mere_a layman_n or_o null_a their_o ordination_n baptism_n or_o other_o church-ministrations_a for_o on_o their_o return_n to_o the_o catholic_n church_n the_o great_a council_n of_o nice_a decree_n that_o 〈◊〉_d such_o of_o they_o as_o shall_v be_v find_v in_o the_o clergy_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o same_o order_n and_o degree_n as_o they_o have_v be_v ordain_v to_o in_o their_o own_o party_n and_o that_o *_o have_v receive_a imposition_n 〈◊〉_d of_o hand_n or_o be_v ordain_v before_o so_o according_a to_o their_o degree_n they_o shall_v remain_v in_o the_o rank_n of_o the_o clergy_n so_o that_o 8._o in_o any_o city_n or_o town_n if_o there_o be_v none_o else_o in_o order_n they_o still_o shall_v be_v the_o bishop_n and_o priest_n thereof_o but_o if_o at_o the_o time_n of_o their_o reconciliation_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o catholic_n bishop_n or_o priest_n live_v there_o that_o then_o the_o catholic_n shall_v have_v preference_n and_o the_o novatian_a shall_v be_v content_a with_o the_o title_n of_o a_o bishop_n without_o the_o administration_n or_o with_o a_o presbyter_n or_o chorepiscopus_n place_n that_o there_o may_v not_o be_v two_o bishop_n in_o a_o city_n at_o once_o yea_o and_o before_o such_o return_n or_o reconciliation_n to_o the_o church_n in_o great_a straitness_n or_o want_n of_o opportunity_n for_o worship_n otherwise_o the_o catholic_n resort_v to_o their_o church_n to_o partake_v of_o ministerial_a office_n from_o they_o as_o 38._o sozomen_n report_v they_o do_v in_o the_o arian_n persecution_n under_o constantius_n the_o other_o be_v the_o schism_n of_o the_o donatist_n albasp_n begin_v by_o man_n profess_v the_o same_o faith_n by_o the_o set_n up_o of_o majorinus_n as_o and_o opposite_a or_o anti-bishop_n against_o caecilian_a the_o true_a and_o canonical_a bishop_n of_o carthage_n this_o schism_n set_v africa_n in_o a_o flame_n and_o quick_o multiply_v into_o a_o number_n of_o anti-bishop_n and_o their_o abettor_n to_o confront_v the_o regular_a bishop_n of_o the_o african_a church_n the_o case_n of_o these_o anti_n bishop_n come_v about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 314_o to_o be_v determine_v by_o the_o synod_n under_o melchiade_n at_o rome_n and_o there_o to_o heal_v the_o division_n melchiade_n and_o the_o synod_n as_o st._n austin_n 1569._o relate_v declare_v their_o readiness_n to_o send_v communicatory_a letter_n to_o they_o even_o to_o those_o that_o appear_v to_o be_v of_o majorinus_n be_v ordination_n and_o decree_v that_o wherescever_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o breach_n there_o be_v two_o bishop_n he_o shall_v be_v confirm_v who_o be_v first_o ordain_v and_o that_o for_o the_o other_o another_o church_n or_o bishopric_n shall_v be_v provide_v which_o st._n austin_n applaud_v as_o a_o innocent_a and_o perfect_a a_o provident_a and_o pacific_a judgement_n and_o afterward_o in_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n under_o aurelius_n about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 419._o whereas_o st._n austin_n himself_o be_v present_a concern_v the_o reception_n of_o the_o donatist_n into_o the_o 71._o church_n it_o be_v decree_v that_o the_o donatist_n clergy_n on_o their_o return_n to_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v receive_v in_o their_o proper_a honour_n or_o degree_n of_o order_n like_a as_o it_o be_v manifest_a they_o have_v be_v receive_v in_o africa_n in_o time_n forego_v and_o when_o any_o people_n or_o diocese_n be_v convert_v from_o donatism_n if_o at_o the_o time_n of_o their_o conversion_n they_o have_v donatist_n bishop_n who_o come_v over_o with_o they_o 103._o without_o controversy_n say_v they_o in_o another_o canon_n they_o may_v have_v they_o still_o beside_o these_o famous_a instance_n of_o opposite_a or_o anti-bishop_n the_o same_o may_v likewise_o appear_v of_o other_o flavianus_n from_o a_o presbyter_n of_o that_o church_n be_v set_v up_o as_o a_o anti-bishop_n and_o ordain_v at_o antioch_n against_o paulinus_n who_o have_v for_o a_o good_a while_n live_v a_o bishop_n of_o the_o orthodox_n in_o that_o church_n and_o by_o 262._o agreement_n with_o his_o competitor_n meletius_n swear_v to_o by_o flavianus_n himself_o be_v to_o hold_v it_o alone_o without_o any_o new_a opposition_n after_o meletius_n be_v death_n this_o paulinus_n moreover_o after_o the_o set_n up_o of_o flavianus_n against_o he_o be_v own_v for_o the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n not_o only_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o egypt_n of_o arabia_n and_o cyprus_n but_o also_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o occidental_n who_o direct_v their_o synodical_a epistle_n to_o he_o and_o none_o to_o flavianus_n as_o be_v relate_v by_o 269._o socrates_n and_o 717._o sozomen_n but_o yet_o flavianus_n ordination_n be_v not_o judge_v thursday_n the_o great_a chrysostom_n himself_o have_v his_o priest_n order_n from_o he_o as_o may_v be_v learn_v from_o 42._o pallqdius_fw-la and_o whilst_o he_o be_v one_o of_o his_o presbyter_n preach_v such_o excellent_a homily_n as_o we_o have_v of_o he_o to_o the_o people_n of_o antioch_n and_o without_o any_o pretence_n of_o nullity_n in_o his_o ordination_n on_o account_n the_o church_n be_v fill_v by_o paulirus_fw-la at_o the_o time_n thereof_o after_o the_o death_n of_o 24._o paulinus_n and_o of_o his_o successor_n euagrius_n without_o any_o new_a ordination_n he_o be_v admit_v to_o communion_n both_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o rome_n who_o have_v reject_v he_o as_o a_o schismatical_a bishop_n whilst_o paulisus_fw-la and_o euagrius_n be_v alive_a in_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n there_o have_v be_v numerous_a ordination_n of_o opposite_a or_o anti-bishop_n which_o have_v make_v no_o few_o than_o 27_o schism_n and_o some_o of_o they_o of_o long_a continuance_n that_o by_o the_o ordination_n of_o clemens_n seven_o as_o a_o anti-bishop_n against_o urban_n 6_o be_v reckon_v to_o have_v last_v fifty_o year_n but_o neither_o 1007._o these_o anti-bishop_n nor_o those_o ordain_v by_o they_o have_v be_v think_v to_o want_v the_o power_n of_o order_n nor_o to_o make_v any_o breach_n of_o the_o continue_a series_n and_o succession_n of_o apostolical_a ordination_n in_o that_o church_n nor_o be_v it_o judge_v to_o do_v so_o by_o ourselves_o we_o conclude_v our_o own_o to_o be_v a_o right_n and_o uninterrupted_a succession_n of_o order_n and_o not_o difow_v it_o in_o good_a part_n at_o least_o to_o be_v derive_v from_o they_o in_o the_o arian_n persecution_n of_o athanasius_n and_o the_o orthodox_n faith_n numerous_a be_v the_o unjust_a deprivation_n of_o orthodox_n bishop_n as_o of_o athanasius_n at_o alexandria_n paulus_n at_o constantinople_n liberius_n at_o rome_n asclepas_n at_o gaza_n lucius_n at_o adrianople_n etc._n etc._n these_o bishop_n be_v depose_v for_o their_o adherence_n to_o the_o truth_n there_o be_v a_o nullity_n in_o their_o deprivation_n as_o i_o show_v 4._o before_o and_o notwithstanding_o those_o deprivation_n they_o still_o fill_v those_o church_n and_o be_v the_o true_a bishop_n thereof_o and_o according_o 12._o be_v communicate_v with_o and_o receive_v as_o such_o by_o the_o western_a synod_n and_o that_o because_o the_o deposition_n be_v not_o real_o for_o other_o fault_n which_o be_v false_o fix_v upon_o their_o person_n but_o for_o their_o hold_v the_o nicene_n faith_n as_o the_o 101._o sufferer_n plead_v and_o upon_o examination_n the_o 23._o synod_n and_o the_o emperor_n 21._o constans_n find_v but_o on_o their_o deposition_n anti-bishop_n be_v set_v up_o against_o they_o and_o obtrude_v on_o their_o seeral_a church_n *_o as_o gregory_n and_o afterward_o george_n be_v against_o athanasius_n at_o alexandria_n and_o eusebin_n of_o niconiedia_n and_o after_o he_o macedonius_n be_v against_o paulus_n at_o constantinople_n and_o felix_n against_o liberius_n at_o rome_n and_o quintianus_n against_o asclepas_n at_o gaza_n not_o to_o mention_v other_o in_o other_o place_n and_o yet_o these_o anti-bishop_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n hen_n ●●ul_a as_o well_o as_o schismatical_a bishop_n be_v not_o hold_v to_o want_v the_o power_n of_o other_o nor_o if_o any_o of_o they_o leave_v their_o heresy_n and_o return_v to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n be_v there_o any_o new_a ordination_n require_v of_o they_o or_o of_o
be_v not_o only_o set_v up_o but_o justify_v 1._o in_o some_o particular_a case_n especial_o of_o general_n concern_v chap._n iu._n more_o of_o the_o case_n wherein_o faithful_a bishop_n and_o minister_n be_v bind_v to_o stick_v to_o their_o pastoral_n power_n and_o ministration_n they_o be_v still_o more_o bind_v to_o this_o ministration_n when_o 2._o this_o justification_n of_o immoral_a practice_n be_v by_o elude_v and_o vacate_v of_o moral_a precept_n opposite_a thereto_o by_o doctrinal_a salvo_n instance_n of_o these_o salvo_n how_o they_o vacate_v the_o respective_a moral_a precept_n such_o salvo_n make_v a_o change_n in_o moral_a doctrine_n though_o man_n still_o own_o the_o duty_n under_o their_o general_a name_n the_o duty_n of_o pastor_n to_o defend_v and_o bear_v up_o moral_a duty_n against_o such_o salvo_n by_o their_o ministration_n show_v at_o large_a and_o this_o when_o such_o corrupt_a salvo_n be_v only_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pastor_n not_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n they_o be_v more_o strict_o oblige_v thereto_o if_o the_o immoral_a practice_n justify_v by_o such_o salvo_n be_v 1._o extreme_o scandaelous_a to_o religion_n 2._o general_o preach_v up_o by_o seducer_n or_o 3._o come_v strong_o recommend_v to_o carnal_a passion_n and_o interest_n chief_o if_o drive_v on_o by_o general_a persecution_n chap._n v._o of_o the_o obligation_n to_o actual_a ministration_n which_o lie_v upon_o they_o in_o the_o foresay_a case_n these_o deduce_v from_o their_o office_n and_o character_n as_o they_o relate_v 1._o to_o god_n and_o stand_v in_o place_n 1._o of_o his_o messenger_n 2._o of_o his_o minister_n and_o ambassador_n the_o various_a obligation_n lay_v on_o they_o thereto_o by_o this_o 3._o of_o his_o co-worker_n 2._o as_o they_o relate_v to_o religion_n as_o they_o be_v minister_n and_o steward_n of_o its_o word_n and_o mystery_n the_o obligation_n arise_v hence_o chap._n vi_o more_o of_o the_o obligation_n to_o actual_a ministration_n which_o lie_v upon_o they_o in_o the_o foresay_a case_n 3._o as_o they_o relate_v to_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o be_v set_v over_o the_o church_n 1._o as_o watchman_n 2._o as_o overseer_n 3._o as_o guide_n or_o leader_n 4._o as_o pastor_n or_o shepherd_n 5._o as_o doctor_n or_o stand_v teacher_n of_o the_o church_n as_o light_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o salt_n of_o the_o earth_n their_o obligation_n to_o such_o exercise_n in_o the_o foresay_a case_n from_o all_o the_o foresay_a character_n different_a degree_n in_o this_o obligation_n a_o spirit_n of_o love_n and_o zeal_n to_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n which_o stand_v not_o upon_o strict_a term_n the_o spring_n and_o principle_n of_o this_o exercise_n how_o this_o clear_v the_o duty_n of_o deprive_a bishop_n and_o clergy_n as_o to_o this_o exercise_n on_o such_o revolution_n answerable_a to_o this_o obligation_n of_o the_o pastor_n to_o afford_v such_o ministration_n at_o such_o time_n be_v the_o people_n obligation_n to_o adhere_v to_o they_o and_o attend_v on_o they_o for_o participation_n thereof_o part_n ii_o of_o deprivation_n by_o civil_a state_n or_o ecclesiastical_a synod_n chap._n i._o of_o the_o force_n of_o state_n deprivation_n in_o the_o foresay_a case_n the_o plea_n of_o a_o deprivation_n of_o state_n represent_v in_o bar_n of_o their_o ministration_n in_o the_o foresay_a case_n concern_v which_o 1._o this_o be_v to_o be_v press_v only_o under_o a_o suppose_a legal_a and_o rightful_a state_n 2._o it_o be_v deprivation_n be_v no_o conscionable_a discharge_n from_o their_o spiritual_a ministration_n in_o the_o foresay_a case_n this_o be_v mean_v only_o of_o pure_a spiritual_a ministration_n not_o 3._o of_o any_o temporal_a accession_n and_o enforcement_n of_o those_o ministration_n over_o which_o the_o state_n have_v power_n because_o it_o confer_v they_o as_o also_o over_o some_o other_o power_n belong_v to_o the_o church_n whilst_o it_o keep_v separate_v which_o it_o give_v up_o to_o the_o state_n during_o its_o incorporation_n with_o it_o these_o it_o give_v up_o 1._o with_o a_o salvo_n to_o the_o interest_n of_o religion_n and_o of_o soul_n 2._o only_o whilst_o it_o continue_v protect_v not_o when_o the_o state_n put_v true_a religion_n under_o persecution_n chap._n ii_o of_o the_o king_n ecclesiastical_a supremacy_n receive_v and_o assert_v by_o our_o church_n it_o lie_v not_o in_o his_o be_v invest_v with_o or_o have_v a_o sovereign_a disposal_n of_o the_o power_n of_o order_n but_o 1._o in_o retain_v his_o civil_a power_n over_o all_o person_n whether_o lay-man_n or_o ecclesiastic_n in_o virtue_n of_o this_o civil_a power_n over_o the_o person_n of_o ecclesiastic_n he_o can_v command_v they_o faithful_o to_o discharge_v their_o spiritual_a function_n 2._o in_o the_o subordination_n of_o ecclesiastical_a court_n and_o cause_n wherein_o ecclesiastic_n be_v content_a to_o act_v subordinate_o on_o the_o score_n of_o their_o secular_a mixture_n and_o jurisdiction_n and_o in_o hold_v all_o this_o 3._o in_o opposition_n and_o bar_n of_o all_o other_o earthly_a dependence_n especial_o of_o all_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n and_o appeal_n this_o supremacy_n exclude_v not_o spiritual_a ministration_n of_o deprive_a clergy_n in_o the_o foresay_a case_n this_o may_v be_v collect_v from_o their_o adversary_n concession_n chap._n iii_o remark_n on_o the_o precede_a account_n of_o the_o force_n of_o state_n deprivation_n and_o instance_n of_o deprivation_n allege_v to_o the_o contrary_a consider_v and_o clear_v up_o the_o precede_a account_n of_o the_o force_n of_o state_n deprivation_n be_v not_o 1._o to_o deny_v the_o civil_a power_n the_o cognizance_n of_o bishop_n and_o minister_n in_o civil_a matter_n nor_o any_o just_a power_n over_o ecclesiastic_n 2._o nor_o to_o set_v the_o church_n above_o the_o state_n as_o the_o papal_a usurpation_n pretend_v to_o do_v nor_o to_o mistake_v or_o overlook_v the_o condition_n of_o a_o incorporate_a church_n the_o deprivation_n of_o abiathar_n by_o solomon_n consider_v and_o clear_v as_o also_o the_o frequent_a deposition_n of_o the_o jewish_a high_a priest_n by_o the_o roman_a governor_n and_o of_o the_o greek_a patriarch_n by_o the_o turk_n and_o of_o the_o popish_a bishop_n by_o a_o commission_n of_o state_n pursuant_n to_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n in_o queen_n mary_n day_n chap._n iu._n of_o deprivation_n by_o synod_n in_o the_o foresay_a case_n deprivation_n of_o bishop_n most_o fit_a and_o pr_v per_fw-la for_o synod_n their_o deprivation_n no_o discharge_n from_o ministration_n in_o the_o foresay_a case_n as_o show_v by_o reason_n and_o by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n this_o be_v mean_v when_o synod_n deprive_v for_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o truth_n not_o of_o other_o mere_a personal_a ●rimes_n where_o the_o injure_v must_v acquiesce_v till_o relieve_v by_o regular_a sentence_n ●hat_n regard_n be_v to_o be_v have_v to_o the_o decision_n of_o synod_n in_o these_o case_n part_n iii_o of_o schism_n chap._n i._o of_o the_o nature_n of_o shism_n and_o of_o the_o schism_n of_o particular_a member_n from_o their_o own_o church_n in_o throw_v off_o subjection_n and_o dependence_n on_o their_o own_o bishop_n of_o the_o union_n of_o a_o society_n which_o schism_n break_v one_o way_n of_o unite_n society_n be_v by_o unite_n they_o under_o the_o same_o head_n these_o in_o church_n society_n be_v the_o bishop_n union_n of_o particular_a member_n to_o their_o own_o church_n be_v in_o keep_v subject_a and_o dependant_a on_o their_o own_o lawful_a bishop_n and_o their_o schism_n lie_v in_o break_v off_o from_o they_o especial_o in_o set_v up_o opposite_a or_o anti-bishop_n against_o they_o so_o 1._o in_o such_o opposition_n the_o anti-bishop_n and_o his_o adherent_n make_v the_o schism_n if_o the_o former_a bishop_n be_v orthodox_n and_o be_v still_o rightful_a bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o george_n the_o cappadocian_n and_o athanasius_n 2._o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o go_v with_o the_o great_a number_n what_o distinguish_v meeting_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n from_o schismatical_a conventicle_n schismatic_n too_o oft_o the_o more_o numerous_a party_n much_o less_o do_v it_o go_v with_o place_n of_o assembly_n 3._o therefore_o in_o press_v ecclesiastical_a unity_n man_n must_v be_v press_v to_o keep_v unite_v to_o their_o own_o orthodox_n rightful_a bishop_n not_o to_o any_o opposite_a bishop_n the_o gospel_n precept_n of_o love_n and_o peace_n etc._n etc._n all_o on_o this_o side_n and_o not_o to_o be_v urge_v the_o other_o way_n such_o a_o schism_n not_o to_o be_v care_v by_o the_o recession_n of_o the_o suffer_a bishop_n in_o the_o foresay_a case_n chap._n ii_o of_o the_o schism_n of_o particular_a church_n from_o other_o sister_n church_n by_o reject_v fraternal_a communion_n therewith_o unity_n of_o one_o body_n to_o be_v keep_v up_o among_o all_o particular_a church_n this_o be_v chief_o by_o the_o union_n and_o accord_n
not_o expect_v from_o it_o the_o benefit_n and_o assistance_n of_o any_o secular_a mixture_n which_o be_v derive_v to_o they_o by_o incorporation_n as_o to_o this_o point_n of_o schism_n several_a good_a mind_n may_v think_v that_o though_o by_o set_v up_o opposite_a or_o anti-bishop_n against_o they_o in_o their_o respective_a see_v other_o have_v already_o make_v it_o yet_o may_v it_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o seinjured_a sufferer_n by_o their_o recede_a and_o submission_n thereto_o to_o remedy_n and_o put_v a_o end_n to_o it_o and_o it_o be_v like_o many_o serious_a and_o hearty_a lover_n of_o peace_n and_o of_o those_o church_n may_v at_o such_o time_n be_v apt_a to_o wish_v that_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o unity_n they_o will_v do_v so_o indeed_o where_o they_o may_v be_v free_a to_o do_v as_o they_o please_v that_o be_v when_o no_o part_n of_o faith_n or_o good_a practice_n be_v like_a to_o suffer_v by_o it_o nor_o the_o safety_n and_o welfare_n of_o those_o soul_n commit_v to_o they_o be_v hazard_v thereby_o much_o may_v be_v say_v to_o good_a pastor_n not_o to_o insist_v too_o much_o on_o their_o personal_a right_n and_o privilege_n but_o to_o forego_v and_o give_v they_o up_o for_o the_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o church_n their_o spiritual_a power_n be_v commit_v to_o they_o not_o as_o to_o 3._o lord_n of_o god_n heretage_n therewith_o to_o seek_v and_o serve_v themselves_o but_o as_o to_o 10._o steward_n that_o look_v after_o it_o for_o another_o or_o as_o 15._o shepherd_n thereby_o to_o serve_v and_o benefit_n their_o flock_n their_o power_n be_v all_o a_o 28._o ministry_n to_o promote_v religion_n and_o serve_v the_o church_n by_o part_v with_o any_o thing_n of_o their_o own_o for_o its_o good_a as_o their_o great_a master_n do_v not_o to_o please_v or_o aggrandise_v their_o own_o person_n be_v 8._o give_v they_o for_o edification_n or_o wherewith_o to_o build_v up_o the_o church_n not_o for_o destruction_n or_o the_o pull_n of_o it_o down_o according_o the_o pastoral_a spirit_n be_v a_o generous_a public_a spirit_n nothing_o be_v more_o opposite_a thereto_o than_o narrow_a private_a aim_n and_o seek_v of_o themselves_o nor_o more_o require_v thereby_o than_o neglect_n or_o denial_n of_o themselves_o for_o the_o safety_n and_o profit_n of_o their_o flock_n and_o care_n or_o solicitude_n for_o other_o it_o lie_v as_o the_o bless_a apostle_n say_v in_o 20._o natural_o care_v for_o the_o church_n in_o 2._o seek_v not_o their_o own_o thing_n but_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v jesus_n christ_n in_o 33._o not_o seek_v their_o own_o profit_n but_o the_o profit_n of_o many_o that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v in_o 23._o make_v themselves_o servant_n to_o all_o when_o thereby_o they_o can_v profit_v the_o state_n of_o religion_n and_o their_o flock_n though_o it_o be_v by_o encumber_v and_o prejudice_v themselves_o become_v all_o thing_n to_o all_o man_n that_o by_o all_o mean_v they_o may_v save_v some_o and_o therefore_o when_o it_o have_v only_o be_v a_o cause_n of_o their_o own_o person_n or_o personal_n claim_n but_o not_o of_o religion_n or_o of_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o church_n good_a and_o holy_a bishop_n have_v think_v it_o become_v the_o pastoral_a spirit_n rather_o to_o recee_v and_o sit_v down_o under_o the_o injury_n than_o that_o for_o their_o sake_n a_o fatal_a schism_n shall_v be_v keep_v on_o in_o the_o church_n 114._o if_o this_o schism_n be_v for_o my_o sake_n send_v i_o away_o or_o i_o will_v depart_v whither_o you_o please_v and_o do_v what_o the_o people_n will_v have_v i_o that_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n with_o the_o presbyter_n over_o it_o may_v be_v keep_v in_o peace_n be_v what_o st._n clemens_n romanus_n st._n paul_n 3._o fellow_n labourer_n recommend_v to_o the_o head_n of_o party_n in_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n and_o press_v by_o the_o example_n of_o moses_n who_o was*_n content_a to_o 33._o be_v blot_v out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o life_n to_o save_v the_o israelite_n and_o of_o those_o king_n who_o even_o among_o heathen_n devote_a themselves_o to_o death_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o their_o own_o country_n we_o ought_v to_o endure_v any_o thing_n rather_o than_o hat_n the_o church_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v divide_v yea_o it_o be_v not_o only_a as_o glorious_a but_o more_o glorious_a in_o my_o judgement_n to_o suffer_v mantyrdom_n for_o keep_v out_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n than_o for_o not_o sacrifice_v to_o idol_n 45._o say_v dionysius_n of_o alexandria_n to_o novatus_n on_o the_o division_n make_v at_o rome_n 29._o if_o i_o be_o any_o way_n the_o cause_n of_o your_o division_n i_o be_o not_o better_o than_o the_o prophet_n jonah_n throw_v i_o into_o the_o sea_n so_o that_o thereby_o the_o tempest_n of_o those_o trouble_n may_v cease_v from_o you_o whatever_o you_o see_v needful_a to_o that_o end_n i_o choose_v to_o suffer_v though_o i_o be_o blameless_a 29._o and_o have_v be_v no_o cause_n of_o these_o trouble_n yet_o for_o your_o unanimity_n and_o peace-sake_n i_o be_o content_a to_o be_v thrust_v out_o of_o the_o throne_n and_o to_o be_v expel_v the_o city_n say_v gregory_n nazianzen_n in_o his_o speech_n to_o the_o synod_n on_o the_o contest_v of_o maximus_n cynicus_n for_o his_o see_v of_o constantinople_n and_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o leave_v this_o prelacy_n to_o who_o you_o will_v provide_v that_o way_n the_o church_n may_v continue_v one_o fin_fw-fr say_v st._n chrysostom_n when_o at_o constantinople_n other_o as_o he_o complain_v have_v unlawful_o ascend_v the_o episcopal_a throne_n and_o thereupon_o a_o separation_n be_v make_v from_o he_o but_o in_o case_n where_o the_o injure_a sufferer_n be_v still_o bind_v to_o insist_v on_o their_o power_n and_o to_o stand_v up_o for_o religion_n sake_n and_o the_o church_n this_o way_n of_o cure_v a_o schism_n by_o their_o recee_n have_v no_o place_n and_o therefore_o this_o obligation_n to_o exercise_v their_o ministries_n i_o have_v fix_v the_o debate_n upon_o in_o the_o case_n of_o such_o deprive_a bishop_n and_o minister_n for_o if_o they_o stand_v bind_v in_o duty_n at_o such_o time_n to_o exercise_v their_o ministration_n though_o never_o so_o desirous_a of_o peace_n and_o unity_n they_o can_v our_o that_o schism_n which_o other_o have_v make_v by_o let_v their_o ministration_n fall_v and_o beside_o it_o be_v direct_o meet_v that_o pretence_n and_o full_o answer_v it_o i_o think_v it_o plain_a to_o be_v apprehend_v and_o more_o powerful_a to_o operate_v on_o the_o mind_n of_o those_o who_o be_v to_o be_v direct_v and_o resolve_v in_o this_o dispute_n chap._n ii_o of_o the_o immoral_a way_n introduce_v by_o a_o wrong_a payment_n of_o allegiance_n the_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n who_o be_v deprive_v by_o the_o state_n when_o they_o can_v comply_v with_o the_o foresay_a change_n and_o imposition_n on_o such_o revolution_n notwithstanding_o the_o deprivation_n of_o state_n still_o retain_v their_o episcopal_a and_o sacerdotal_a power_n that_o be_v they_o be_v as_o true_a bishop_n and_o priest_n as_o they_o be_v before_o they_o be_v still_o endow_v with_o the_o power_n of_o order_n and_o their_o use_n thereof_o will_v be_v as_o valid_a though_o not_o as_o to_o secular_a claim_n and_o privilege_n which_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o prince_n yet_o as_o to_o the_o real_a effect_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n or_o to_o pure_o spiritual_a purpose_n as_o they_o will_v have_v be_v have_v they_o not_o be_v so_o deprive_v for_o these_o power_n be_v not_o derive_v from_o the_o state_n nor_o from_o any_o secular_a authority_n they_o be_v call_v the_o power_n and_o key_n not_o of_o any_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n but_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n mat._n 16._o 19_o jesus_n christ_n be_v a_o spiritual_a king_n disclaim_v all_o secular_a authority_n or_o power_n of_o the_o sword_n and_o 36._o declare_v his_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n nor_o to_o be_v uphold_v by_o his_o servant_n fight_v with_o the_o sword_n and_o he_o institute_v all_o church_n power_n yea_o these_o he_o institute_v before_o the_o church_n come_v to_o be_v incorporate_v with_o the_o state_n and_o make_v no_o new_a institution_n or_o alteration_n therein_o afterward_o and_o when_o secular_a power_n turn_v christian_n they_o become_v the_o member_n of_o a_o empower_v church_n and_o be_v let_v in_o by_o minister_n and_o privilege_v to_o claim_v ministration_n from_o power_n antecedent_o receive_v from_o christ_n and_o not_o at_o all_o need_v to_o be_v receive_v from_o they_o nor_o capable_a of_o be_v confer_v by_o they_o as_o have_v never_o be_v confer_v on_o they_o nor_o be_v these_o power_n to_o be_v hold_v only_o during_o the_o will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o the_o state_n for_o then_o they_o can_v not_o be_v retain_v against_o its_o mind_n and_o
so_o not_o in_o a_o state_n of_o persecution_n when_o the_o secular_a power_n set_v itself_o to_o root_v out_o the_o church_n and_o all_o church-power_n and_o ministration_n whereas_o these_o power_n be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n bear_v christ_n cross_n and_o labour_v under_o persecution_n and_o to_o continue_v in_o it_o always_o even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n under_o whatever_o circumstance_n as_o well_o when_o secular_o oppress_v as_o when_o protect_v according_o these_o spiritual_a power_n be_v hold_v on_o by_o the_o apostle_n when_o the_o secular_a ruler_n declare_v against_o their_o apostolical_a authority_n and_o 22._o forbid_v they_o to_o preach_v any_o more_o i●_n the_o name_n of_o jesus_n and_o by_o the_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n in_o all_o the_o succeed_a persecution_n for_o all_o persecution_n of_o the_o church_n be_v persecution_n of_o all_o church_n administration_n and_o of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n in_o a_o more_o especial_a manner_n who_o be_v chief_a actor_n and_o at_o the_o head_n thereof_o yea_o especial_a edict_n and_o prosecution_n be_v make_v against_o they_o for_o be_v vest_v with_o these_o authority_n as_o the_o title_n of_o st._n cyprian_n be_v proscription_n be_v for_o be_v ox._n episcopus_fw-la christianorum_fw-la or_o a_o christian_a bishop_n which_o authority_n therefore_o will_v no_o long_o have_v belong_v to_o they_o can_v a_o persecute_v power_n have_v deprive_v or_o bereave_v they_o thereof_o and_o this_o retain_v their_o spiritual_a power_n will_v be_v allow_v by_o their_o adversary_n who_o 20._o acknowledge_v that_o the_o deprivation_n of_o state_n be_v no_o degradation_n to_o divest_v they_o of_o their_o character_n or_o spiritual_a power_n confer_v in_o order_n but_o only_o a_o debare_v they_o of_o exercise_n thereof_o in_o their_o dominion_n and_o in_o way_n of_o a_o incorporate_a church_n under_o state_n encouragement_n so_o that_o if_o they_o do_v exercise_v their_o ministry_n there_o will_v be_v no_o want_n of_o spiritual_a power_n to_o render_v their_o act_n nullity_n or_o of_o no_o effect_n and_o validity_n before_o christ._n but_o only_o want_v of_o secular_a benefice_n and_o enforcement_n to_o they_o and_o of_o submission_n as_o they_o allege_v to_o the_o secular_a power_n or_o of_o secular_a obedience_n and_o have_v still_o their_o episcopal_a and_o ministerial_a power_n it_o be_v next_o to_o be_v consider_v whether_o they_o stand_v bind_v to_o exercise_n and_o make_v use_n thereof_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v bring_v into_o this_o question_n what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v herein_o on_o worldly_a argument_n as_o they_o stand_v deprive_v of_o their_o livelihood_n and_o way_n of_o maintenance_n how_o hard_o soever_o this_o may_v fall_v either_o upon_o themselves_o or_o their_o family_n which_o however_o it_o may_v abate_v or_o excuse_v especial_o to_o compassionate_a nature_n yet_o be_v no_o justification_n of_o thing_n that_o be_v otherwise_o unjustifiable_a on_o principle_n of_o religion_n and_o conscience_n but_o what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v on_o conscionable_a argument_n that_o be_v to_o rule_v their_o determination_n as_o christian_n especial_o as_o divine_n or_o that_o they_o may_v faithful_o discharge_v their_o duty_n what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v by_o spiritual_o mind_v and_o mortify_v man_n who_o be_v raise_v above_o this_o world_n and_o prefer_v god_n and_o religion_n before_o themselves_o nor_o be_v the_o dispute_n whether_o the_o ministerial_a power_n be_v such_o a_o burden_n that_o man_n must_v be_v always_o press_v and_o obtrude_a the_o exercise_n thereof_o without_o any_o regard_n to_o the_o want_n of_o the_o place_n or_o the_o need_v of_o the_o church_n 1●_n necessity_n be_v lay_v upon_o i_o and_o woe_n be_v to_o i_o if_o i_o preach_v not_o the_o gospel_n be_v speak_v in_o the_o want_n of_o true_a preacher_n when_o 2._o the_o harvest_n be_v great_a but_o the_o labourer_n be_v few_o it_o speak_v a_o necessity_n introduce_v not_o mere_o by_o the_o power_n of_o order_n but_o also_o by_o the_o circumstance_n of_o time_n and_o person_n when_o the_o exercise_n thereof_o be_v necessary_a in_o want_n of_o preacher_n for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o church_n but_o in_o plenty_n of_o true_a preacher_n there_o will_v not_o have_v be_v the_o same_o necessity_n nor_o will_v they_o have_v be_v bind_v to_o this_o exercise_n in_o place_n where_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o their_o gift_n but_o the_o same_o be_v exercise_v by_o other_o in_o this_o surplusage_n of_o supply_n for_o church-use_n and_o necessity_n 33._o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o prophet_n and_o their_o power_n must_v either_o be_v exercise_v or_o forbear_v and_o suspend_v as_o make_v most_o for_o order_n and_o edification_n and_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n but_o this_o exercise_n the_o deprive_a bishop_n and_o clergy_n be_v bind_v to_o in_o duty_n and_o conscience_n at_o such_o time_n if_o there_o be_v a_o need_n of_o their_o ministration_n then_o to_o provide_v for_o religion_n and_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n or_o to_o prevent_v man_n from_o be_v nurse_v up_o in_o destructive_a way_n as_o immoral_a practice_n and_o immoral_a worship_n and_o devotion_n must_v be_v confess_v to_o be_v to_o clear_v this_o it_o may_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o consider_v first_o what_o immorality_n come_v in_o by_o a_o wrong_n payment_n of_o allegiance_n to_o corrupt_v religion_n and_o to_o endanger_v soul_n second_o what_o provision_n good_a and_o faithful_a pastor_n ought_v to_o make_v against_o such_o danger_n and_o corruption_n by_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o ministry_n first_o i_o shall_v brief_o consider_v what_o immorality_n come_v in_o by_o a_o wrong_a payment_n of_o allegiance_n to_o corrupt_v religion_n and_o to_o endanger_v soul_n whether_o this_o be_v actual_o the_o case_n of_o any_o kingdom_n and_o the_o allegiance_n require_v of_o they_o by_o their_o new_a governor_n be_v direct_v and_o pay_v wrong_n i_o do_v not_o here_o discuss_v that_o make_v another_o dispute_n viz._n about_o the_o right_n to_o the_o crown_n contest_v betwixt_o the_o two_o competitor_n in_o those_o country_n and_o the_o lawfulness_n or_o unlawfulness_n of_o the_o new_a oath_n of_o allegiance_n consequent_a thereupon_o which_o be_v exact_v on_o such_o change_n and_o this_o it_o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o design_n of_o these_o paper_n to_o argue_v or_o meddle_v with_o but_o when_o this_o real_o be_v the_o case_n in_o any_o revolution_n as_o in_o this_o world_n god_n know_v it_o be_v too_o often_o or_o among_o those_o subject_n who_o believe_v this_o be_v their_o case_n and_o that_o their_o allegiance_n be_v call_v for_o to_o the_o wrong_n against_o the_o right_a person_n such_o as_o these_o be_v the_o immorality_n that_o will_v everywhere_o corrupt_a religion_n and_o endanger_v soul_n whilst_o such_o wrong_a payment_n last_v and_o which_o shall_v be_v think_v to_o do_v so_o among_o they_o viz._n then_o all_o that_o time_n whilst_o they_o be_v violent_o transfer_v their_o allegiance_n from_o he_o to_o who_o it_o still_o remain_v rightful_o due_a will_v man_n in_o the_o general_a practice_n of_o those_o nation_n be_v wicked_o disobey_v and_o forcible_o resist_v god_n authority_n or_o the_o father_n of_o the_o five_o commandment_n which_o extend_v to_o civil_a as_o well_o as_o natural_a parent_n then_o will_v they_o all_o that_o while_o be_v most_o open_o and_o horrible_o break_v through_o all_o former_a oath_n of_o allegiance_n then_o will_v all_o who_o have_v promise_v and_o pay_v their_o allegiance_n to_o drive_v out_o their_o eject_v prince_n out_o of_o any_o part_n of_o his_o right_n or_o to_o keep_v he_o out_o thereof_o be_v actor_n of_o bare_a face_a iniquity_n and_o heinous_o unrighteous_a covet_v and_o invade_v their_o neighbour_n good_n and_o all_o force_n use_v against_o he_o or_o any_o other_o person_n for_o their_o adhere_n to_o his_o cause_n will_v in_o god_n account_n be_v oppression_n and_o unjust_a violence_n all_o spoil_n and_o seizure_n of_o their_o good_n will_v be_v theft_n and_o robbery_n and_o all_o shed_n of_o their_o blood_n all_o cry_v and_o clamour_n for_o it_o or_o rejoice_v in_o it_o will_v be_v horrible_a murder_n which_o not_o only_o they_o who_o act_v but_o they_o who_o wish_v or_o pray_v for_o or_o give_v thanks_o for_o when_o accomplish_v will_v be_v guilty_a of_o all_o which_o be_v most_o dangerous_a and_o destructive_a way_n and_o amount_v to_o a_o general_a breach_n of_o god_n commandment_n and_o to_o a_o open_a waist_n of_o moral_a honesty_n and_o justice_n and_o all_o these_o will_v be_v the_o danger_n to_o man_n soul_n in_o any_o kingdom_n be_v the_o translation_n of_o allegiance_n such_o a_o unrighteous_a perversion_n real_o and_o in_o itself_o or_o they_o will_v be_v meet_v with_o like_a pastoral_n provision_n as_o if_o they_o be_v so_o dangerous_a shall_v the_o deprive_a pastor_n believe_v and_o apprehend_v it_o to_o be_v such_o
minister_n since_o they_o in_o effect_n preach_v they_o down_o and_o there_o be_v no_o appearance_n of_o their_o be_v faithful_o administer_v at_o all_o if_o not_o by_o they_o so_o that_o what_o ministerial_a trust_n they_o undertake_v or_o ordination_n promise_v they_o make_v of_o be_v ready_a with_o all_o faithful_a diligence_n to_o drive_v away_o all_o such_o erroneous_a doctrine_n be_v more_o press_v upon_o they_o since_o than_o they_o rest_v on_o their_o fidelity_n alone_o and_o this_o will_v be_v to_o answer_v the_o apostle_n rule_n of_o take_v beed_o to_o all_o their_o flock_n when_o the_o speaker_n of_o perverse_a thing_n arise_v to_o draw_v away_o disciple_n after_o they_o act._n 20._o 28_o 30._o of_o stand_v up_o against_o deceiver_n that_o teach_v thing_n which_o they_o ought_v not_o and_o of_o exhort_v and_o covince_v and_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o gain-sayers_n tit._n 1._o 9_o 10_o 11._o of_o make_v full_a proof_n of_o their_o ministry_n when_o people_n have_v teacher_n after_o their_o own_o lust_n yea_o will_v not_o bear_v sound_a doctrine_n but_o heap_v up_o such_o to_o themselves_o have_v itch_a ear_n 2_o tim._n 4._o 3_o 5._o or_o 3._o if_o they_o come_v recommend_v by_o suitableness_n to_o worldly_a and_o carnal_a passion_n and_o interest_n which_o when_o once_o these_o salvo_n have_v reconcile_v they_o to_o man_n conscience_n will_v be_v sure_a to_o gain_v innumerable_a follower_n but_o especial_o if_o the_o serupulous_a and_o unwilling_a be_v drive_v into_o they_o by_o a_o sore_a and_o general_a persecution_n this_o case_n of_o persecution_n i_o grant_v be_v a_o outward_a discouragement_n to_o the_o true_a pastor_n from_o perform_v this_o ministration_n because_o it_o will_v be_v sure_a to_o be_v hot_a against_o they_o and_o it_o will_v be_v a_o hindrance_n too_o from_o their_o discharge_v it_o so_o full_o and_o general_o as_o they_o may_v do_v in_o a_o free_a and_o quiet_a time_n if_o meeting_n then_o be_v fix_v and_o of_o free_a recourse_n and_o open_a and_o numerous_a they_o will_v miss_v of_o their_o end_n and_o the_o effect_n will_v only_o be_v to_o be_v disturb_v and_o carry_v before_o magistrate_n not_o to_o go_v on_o in_o prayer_n and_o devotion_n assembly_n to_o partake_v in_o these_o ministration_n can_v be_v so_o regular_a and_o constant_a to_o time_n and_o place_n so_o free_a and_o full_a of_o communicant_n and_o so_o easy_a and_o accessable_a to_o all_o those_o member_n who_o desire_n and_o stand_v in_o need_n thereof_o when_o the_o church_n be_v daily_o disturb_v and_o persecute_v and_o drive_v into_o the_o wilderness_n as_o they_o may_v in_o time_n of_o peace_n and_o external_a allowance_n and_o thus_o in_o the_o first_o persecution_n the_o disciple_n assemble_v in_o the_o evening_n and_o be_v careful_a to_o keep_v the_o door_n shut_v for_o fear_n of_o the_o jew_n io._n 20._o 19_o 26._o and_o st._n paul_n meeting_n on_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n at_o troas_n be_v hold_v in_o a_o upper_a chamber_n and_o in_o the_o 12._o nighttime_n his_o speech_n be_v continue_v until_o midnight_n act._n 20._o 7_o 8_o 9_o 11._o and_o pliny_n account_n to_o the_o emperor_n trajan_n of_o the_o christian_n meeting_n in_o that_o persecution_n be_v that_o 306._o on_o their_o set_a time_n their_o manner_n be_v to_o meet_v together_o before_o day_n for_o their_o solemn_a worship_n and_o sacrament_n but_o so_o far_o as_o they_o can_v minister_v the_o word_n of_o moral_a truth_n against_o they_o in_o a_o persecute_a and_o disperse_a state_n and_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o that_o will_v admit_v of_o they_o have_v more_o obligation_n to_o this_o ministration_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o persecution_n it_o make_v the_o difficulty_n of_o this_o ministration_n to_o be_v the_o more_o but_o the_o duty_n of_o it_o to_o be_v never_o the_o less_o but_o the_o straight_a likewise_o for_o the_o more_o other_o persecute_v moral_a duty_n and_o good_a practice_n the_o more_o need_n there_o be_v for_o the_o minister_n thereof_o to_o stand_v up_o for_o they_o and_o the_o more_o any_o faithful_a soul_n be_v persecute_v for_o they_o the_o more_o need_n there_o be_v for_o the_o guide_n of_o soul_n and_o the_o more_o obligation_n lie_v on_o they_o by_o the_o best_a ministration_n they_o can_v to_o instruct_v and_o strengthen_v they_o therein_o they_o be_v then_o to_o minister_v the_o word_n not_o only_o to_o confirm_v they_o in_o their_o good_a practice_n but_o also_o to_o support_v and_o comfort_v they_o under_o their_o hard_a suffering_n and_o to_o assist_v and_o arm_v they_o at_o all_o point_n against_o their_o persecutor_n and_o spiritual_a enemy_n that_o by_o faith_n and_o fortitude_n patience_n and_o charity_n they_o may_v brave_o repel_v all_o their_o assault_n and_o glorious_o triumph_n over_o they_o thus_o god_n blame_v the_o shepherd_n of_o israel_n because_o when_o the_o flock_n be_v scatter_v none_o do_v search_v or_o seek_v after_o they_o when_o any_o be_v drive_v away_o none_o seek_v to_o bring_v they_o back_o again_o nor_o to_o strengthen_v what_o be_v disease_a nor_o to_o bind_v up_o what_o be_v break_v among_o they_o ezek._n 34._o 4_o 5_o 6._o and_o when_o the_o wolf_n be_v come_v to_o break_v in_o among_o the_o sheep_n and_o to_o rear_v and_o scatter_v they_o i._n e._n when_o some_o cruel_a and_o imminent_a persecution_n be_v before_o they_o if_o a_o pastor_n do_v not_o stick_v by_o they_o then_o and_o minister_n and_o show_v his_o pastoral_n care_v the_o best_a he_o can_v but_o leave_v they_o to_o themselves_o and_o look_v only_o how_o he_o may_v secure_v his_o own_o person_n our_o bless_a lord_n tell_v we_o he_o be_v no_o true_a shepherd_n as_o be_v destitute_a of_o the_o pastoral_n care_n and_o spirit_n but_o a_o hireling_n jo._n 10._o 12._o and_o st._n paul_n bid_v timothy_n to_o stir_v up_o the_o gift_n that_o be_v in_o he_o by_o the_o lay_v on_o of_o his_o hand_n and_o not_o to_o be_v hinder_v or_o discourage_v from_o it_o by_o the_o persecution_n of_o that_o time_n for_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n confer_v by_o god_n upon_o his_o minister_n by_o such_o imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o fear_n or_o cowardice_n who_o ministration_n be_v to_o be_v stop_v by_o approach_n of_o danger_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o power_n or_o courage_n and_o of_o love_n to_o he_o and_o his_o church_n when_o thereby_o we_o expose_v our_o own_o person_n 2_o tim._n 1._o 6_o 7._o see_v we_o have_v or_o stand_v charge_v with_o this_o ministry_n though_o trouble_v perplex_a and_o persecute_v on_o every_o side_n in_o the_o due_a discharge_v thereof_o we_o faint_v not_o say_v he_o 2_o cor._n 4_o 1_o 8_o 9_o but_o approve_v ourselves_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n by_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n and_o by_o the_o armour_n of_o righteousness_n on_o the_o right-hand_n and_o on_o the_o left_a in_o all_o patience_n and_o affliction_n and_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o tumult_n of_o stripe_n and_o imprisonment_n 2_o cor._n 6._o 4_o 5_o 7._o chap._n five_o of_o the_o obligation_n to_o actual_a ministration_n which_o lie_v upon_o they_o in_o the_o foresay_a case_n hitherto_o i_o have_v insist_v on_o those_o case_n wherein_o true_a and_o faithful_a pastor_n and_o minister_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v plain_o bind_v as_o i_o conceive_v to_o stir_v up_o those_o spiritual_a power_n which_o he_o have_v confer_v on_o they_o and_o to_o act_v ministeral_o as_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n for_o supply_v the_o needs_o of_o religion_n and_o of_o soul_n or_o of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v entrust_v to_o their_o charge_n and_o the_o sum_n of_o what_o i_o have_v say_v thereupon_o be_v this_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o supply_v the_o church_n with_o the_o ministration_n of_o prayer_n or_o of_o pure_a and_o unpolluted_a office_n when_o the_o public_a service_n be_v corrupt_v and_o prayer_n be_v poison_v not_o only_o with_o idolatrous_a but_o also_o with_o unrighteous_a and_o immoral_a mixture_n and_o with_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n when_o they_o see_v dangerous_a and_o immoral_a practice_n be_v begin_v to_o be_v set_v up_o and_o more_o still_o when_o they_o be_v offer_v to_o be_v justify_v be_v oblige_v to_o this_o when_o immoral_a practice_n be_v justify_v in_o some_o great_a and_o particular_a case_n which_o be_v like_a to_o involve_v the_o generality_n of_o person_n and_o high_o oblige_v yet_o when_o for_o justification_n of_o the_o same_o in_o such_o particular_a case_n false_a teacher_n set_v themselves_o to_o vacate_v all_o the_o opposite_a moral_a duty_n by_o undermine_a proposition_n and_o doctrinal_a salvo_n all_o which_o still_o call_v loud_o for_o this_o ministration_n if_o the_o immoral_a practice_n so_o justify_v and_o doctrinal_o salve_v be_v in_o themselves_o infamous_a and_o a_o scandal_n to_o religion_n or_o if_o they_o have_v number_n of_o seducer_n and_o false_a guide_n
afford_v he_o their_o ministration_n at_o such_o time_n as_o god_n public_a agent_n and_o ordinary_a ambassador_n their_o instruction_n be_v to_o preserve_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n safe_a then_o they_o must_v see_v to_o guard_v his_o worship_n from_o sinful_a and_o pollute_v mixture_n and_o his_o law_n from_o elusive_a gloss_n and_o undermine_a salvo_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o his_o people_n from_o damnable_a unrighteousness_n and_o immorality_n and_o what_o sort_n of_o agent_n will_v they_o show_v themselves_o shall_v they_o refuse_v to_o minister_n and_o act_n for_o he_o what_o trusty_a ambassador_n shall_v they_o fail_v to_o pursue_v their_o instruction_n when_o all_o these_o wrong_n and_o violence_n be_v offer_v to_o his_o affair_n and_o be_v attempt_v to_o be_v obtrude_v upon_o his_o worship_n his_o precept_n and_o his_o people_n at_o such_o time_n as_o his_o ambassador_n they_o be_v ambassador_n for_o peace_n and_o carry_v 20._o the_o word_n of_o reconciliation_n to_o a_o people_n that_o have_v offend_v he_o and_o when_o god_n and_o any_o people_n be_v at_o enmity_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o foresay_a worship_n and_o practice_n will_v they_o approve_v themselves_o fit_a to_o be_v entrust_v with_o this_o ambassage_n of_o peace_n or_o to_o be_v faithful_a in_o the_o discharge_v thereof_o who_o shall_v not_o so_o much_o as_o tell_v the_o offender_n that_o god_n and_o they_o be_v at_o difference_n nor_o minister_v and_o propose_v from_o he_o the_o true_a term_n of_o make_v up_o the_o breach_n by_o fail_v to_o minister_v this_o word_n when_o they_o be_v send_v on_o purpose_n with_o it_o and_o have_v undertake_v the_o 18._o administration_n of_o it_o will_v they_o not_o prove_v themselves_o downright_a enemy_n and_o base_o treacherous_a and_o false_a to_o both_o and_o be_v any_o failure_n or_o falsehood_n more_o fatal_a as_o well_o as_o more_o inexcusable_a than_o they_o will_v be_v in_o this_o case_n as_o christ_n representative_n and_o as_o sustain_v his_o person_n and_o place_n they_o be_v to_o say_v what_o he_o will_v say_v to_o any_o offender_n and_o to_o act_v as_o he_o will_v act_v in_o these_o case_n be_v he_o visible_o to_o appear_v and_o immediate_o to_o manage_v and_o administer_v his_o own_o affair_n they_o must_v come_v into_o christ_n care_n and_o administration_n when_o they_o come_v to_o sustain_v his_o person_n for_o his_o part_n on_o earth_n as_o he_o declare_v be_v to_o ●●_o minister_v to_o his_o church_n represent_v he_o they_o must_v endeavour_v as_o they_o can_v to_o supply_v the_o want_n of_o his_o presence_n and_o that_o must_v be_v by_o afford_v religion_n and_o his_o people_n what_o ministration_n he_o will_v afford_v to_o they_o be_v he_o among_o ●●●m_n and_o this_o must_v imply_v the_o foresay_a exercise_n of_o their_o spiritual_a ministry_n in_o the_o abovementioned_a case_n for_o be_v he_o on_o earth_n at_o such_o time_n he_o will_v sure_o see_v no_o want_n of_o these_o ministration_n to_o preserve_v or_o rescue_n his_o worship_n from_o be_v pollute_v his_o law_n from_o be_v vacate_v and_o the_o practice_n of_o his_o people_n from_o such_o way_n of_o sin_n and_o death_n as_o be_v then_o offer_v to_o be_v obtrude_v on_o they_o to_o minister_v against_o all_o these_o be_v his_o business_n when_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n and_o will_v be_v so_o be_v he_o to_o appear_v again_o and_o aught_o to_o be_v the_o business_n of_o all_o that_o represent_v and_o appear_v for_o he_o if_o they_o neglect_v the_o ministry_n and_o care_n of_o these_o thing_n and_o let_v they_o alone_o what_o other_o ministry_n be_v there_o leave_v then_o for_o they_o to_o represent_v this_o great_a 8._o minister_n of_o god_n and_o 25._o bishop_n of_o our_o soul_n in_o if_o then_o they_o do_v not_o minister_v his_o word_n to_o the_o church_n in_o his_o name_n what_o become_v of_o the_o communication_n which_o they_o be_v to_o keep_v up_o between_o his_o church_n and_o he_o for_o he_o be_v to_o speak_v to_o they_o by_o his_o representative_n and_o say_v he_o that_o hear_v they_o hear_v he_o luk._n 10._o 16._o and_o if_o his_o representative_n be_v silent_a at_o such_o time_n and_o say_v nothing_o from_o he_o that_o instead_o of_o faithful_o maintain_v be_v to_o drop_v and_o make_v a_o end_n of_o this_o way_n of_o communication_n thus_o do_v their_o very_a office_n and_o station_n of_o be_v god_n ordinary_a and_o stand_a minister_n and_o public_a agent_n and_o ambassador_n and_o representative_n oblige_v they_o to_o actual_a administration_n in_o the_o foresay_a case_n their_o office_n lie_v in_o supply_v such_o administration_n which_o be_v the_o trust_v they_o have_v receive_v from_o christ_n and_o the_o business_n which_o they_o be_v set_v for_o he_o have_v commit_v to_o we_o the_o administration_n of_o this_o reconciliation_n say_v st._n paul_n 2_o cor._n 5._o 18._o this_o faithful_a supply_n of_o such_o administration_n be_v call_v fulfil_v their_o ministry_n as_o in_o st._n paul_n caution_n to_o archippus_n col._n 4._o 17._o for_o to_o intrust_v his_o thing_n with_o they_o as_o minister_n or_o agent_n be_v to_o trust_v that_o they_o will_v act_v therein_o and_o administer_v the_o same_o unto_o his_o people_n according_o they_o who_o have_v receive_v a_o ministry_n be_v require_v to_o wait_v on_o their_o administration_n ro._n 12._o 6_o 7._o or_o every_o man_n as_o he_o have_v receive_v the_o gift_n of_o preach_v or_o ministry_n etc._n etc._n even_o so_o to_o minister_v the_o same_o one_o to_o another_o as_o good_a steward_n of_o the_o manifold_a grace_n of_o god_n 1_o pet._n 4._o 10_o 11._o thus_o also_o they_o be_v call_v to_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o discharge_v these_o ministration_n against_o teacher_n preach_v to_o please_v man_n lust_n and_o against_o people_n heap_v up_o such_o teacher_n to_o themselves_o that_o they_o may_v thereby_o fulfil_v or_o make_v full_a proof_n of_o their_o ministry_n 2_o tim._n 4._o 2_o 3_o 5._o and_o be_v bid_v not_o to_o neglect_v the_o gift_n that_o be_v in_o they_o by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n but_o to_o be_v the_o people_n monitor_n against_o the_o speaker_n of_o lie_n in_o hypocrisy_n that_o they_o may_v be_v good_a minister_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 1_o tim._n 4._o 2_o 6_o 14._o and_o to_o approve_v themselves_o as_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n by_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n and_o by_o the_o armour_n of_o righteousness_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o affliction_n and_o persecution_n 2_o cor_fw-la 6._o 4_o 5_o 7._o their_o administration_n must_v from_o time_n to_o time_n keep_v up_o what_o god_n will_v have_v keep_v up_o both_o in_o his_o people_n practice_n and_o in_o doctrine_n in_o worship_n and_o devotion_n they_o shall_v teach_v my_o people_n the_o difference_n between_o the_o holy_a and_o profane_a and_o shall_v cause_v they_o to_o discern_v between_o the_o unclean_a and_o the_o clean._n and_o they_o shall_v keep_v my_o law_n and_o my_o statute_n in_o all_o my_o assembly_n or_o see_v that_o all_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o those_o assembly_n according_a to_o they_o as_o loc_n theodoret_n expound_v it_o ezek._n 44._o 23_o 24._o 3._o of_o his_o fellow-worker_n or_o co-adjutors_a we_o as_o worker_n together_o with_o god_n beseech_v you_o say_v st._n paul_n 2_o cor._n 6._o 1._o we_o be_v 〈◊〉_d labourer_n together_o with_o god_n the_o chief_a worker_n and_o you_o be_v god_n husbandry_n who_o as_o co-labourer_n we_o cultivate_v plant_v what_o be_v profitable_a and_o root_a out_o every_o hurtful_a weed_n you_o be_v god_n building_n which_o we_o as_o workman_n together_o with_o he_o be_v spiritual_o to_o rear_n and_o build_v up_o or_o to_o repair_v the_o same_o when_o any_o part_n thereof_o be_v break_v down_o 1_o cor._n 3._o 9_o now_o when_o any_o such_o breach_n be_v make_v upon_o the_o worship_n or_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o upon_o the_o practice_n of_o his_o people_n in_o all_o the_o foresay_a case_n god_n be_v sure_a to_o be_v at_o work_n with_o men._n his_o providence_n outward_o throw_v i_o hindrance_n and_o awaken_n alarms_z and_o his_o holy_a spirit_n be_v inward_o busy_a in_o their_o heart_n by_o raise_v holy_a thought_n and_o suggestion_n to_o prevent_v the_o fall_n of_o some_o and_o to_o recover_v and_o raise_v up_o other_o who_o be_v already_o fall_v and_o to_o set_v both_o the_o celebration_n of_o his_o own_o worship_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o his_o precept_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o his_o people_n at_o right_n again_o and_o whilst_o he_o be_v thus_o work_v and_o ply_v they_o both_o with_o inward_a motion_n and_o with_o outward_a accident_n or_o occurrence_n his_o minister_n as_o fellow-worker_n shall_v join_v their_o ministration_n to_o carry_v on_o the_o same_o work_n in_o they_o and_o how_o be_v they_o fellow-labourer_n if_o at_o such_o time_n whilst_o he_o hold_v on_o labour_v they_o give_v it_o off_o how_o
creditable_a to_o the_o world_n 1_o tim._n 3._o 15._o as_o a_o church_n they_o must_v preserve_v the_o depositum_fw-la and_o minister_n and_o bear_v it_o out_o in_o their_o own_o time_n and_o commit_v the_o same_o to_o faithful_a man_n who_o at_o the_o head_n of_o their_o respective_a church_n may_v hold_v it_o on_o and_o teach_v other_o that_o be_v transmit_v it_o down_o by_o like_a way_n of_o church_n ministration_n and_o visible_a society_n to_o succeed_a age_n 2_o tim._n 2._o 2._o by_o the_o profession_n and_o ministration_n of_o such_o society_n it_o come_v down_o to_o we_o and_o by_o the_o same_o ought_v we_o to_o convey_v it_o down_o to_o our_o posterity_n that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o want_n of_o that_o sacred_a depositum_fw-la or_o of_o a_o church_n to_o minister_v the_o same_o and_o bear_v it_o out_o before_o man_n to_o preserve_v the_o knowledge_n and_o memory_n thereof_o and_o to_o show_v that_o true_a religion_n have_v not_o fail_v to_o the_o world_n end_n chap._n vi_o more_o of_o the_o obligation_n to_o actual_a ministration_n which_o lie_v upon_o they_o in_o the_o foresay_a case_n the_o last_o respect_n wherein_o the_o ministerial_a character_n may_v be_v consider_v be_v 3._o three_o as_o they_o relate_v to_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n or_o to_o the_o church_n and_o these_o also_o most_o evident_o oblige_v to_o the_o same_o ministration_n in_o the_o foresay_a case_n for_o in_o this_o respect_n they_o be_v place_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o set-ove_a it_o 1._o as_o watchman_n i_o have_v set_v thou_o as_o a_o watchman_n to_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n say_v god_n to_o the_o prophet_n ezek_n 3._o 17._o and_o cap._n 33._o 7._o and_o they_o watch_v for_o your_o soul_n as_o they_o that_o must_v give_v a_o account_n thereof_o say_v st._n paul_n heb._n 13._o 17._o now_o the_o watchman_n be_v set_v to_o espy_v any_o emergent_a harm_n or_o danger_n before_o they_o come_v and_o to_o descry_v the_o enemy_n whilst_o yet_o he_o be_v only_o approach_v and_o this_o to_o give_v notice_n of_o they_o that_o the_o people_n may_v not_o be_v surprise_v or_o sieze_v thereby_o but_o timely_o shun_v they_o or_o prepare_v against_o they_o so_o that_o his_o office_n lie_v in_o minister_a the_o word_n of_o warn_v be_v set_v as_o their_o watchman_n thou_o shall_v warn_v they_o from_o i_o ezek._n 3._o 17._o and_o cap._n 33._o 7._o warn_v every_o man_n who_o be_v in_o the_o way_n of_o do_v ill_a and_o teach_v every_o man_n the_o sin_n and_o danger_n thereof_o that_o we_o may_v present_v every_o man_n perfect_a in_o the_o knowledge_n and_o obedience_n of_o christ_n jesus_n col._n 1._o 28._o and_o if_o he_o fail_v to_o minister_v this_o word_n of_o warn_v as_o any_o spiritual_a need_n of_o they_o or_o as_o any_o approach_n of_o sin_n and_o danger_n require_v the_o same_o their_o blood_n god_n will_v require_v at_o the_o vvatchman_n hand_n ezek._n 33._o 8._o and_o cap._n 3._o 18._o now_o immoral_a worship_n and_o practice_n be_v most_o detrimental_a and_o dangerous_a to_o soul_n immoral_a prayer_n profane_a god_n instead_o of_o honour_v he_o and_o provoke_v a_o curse_n instead_o of_o bring_v down_o a_o blessing_n and_o immoral_a practice_n be_v way_n of_o death_n which_o man_n must_v not_o trust_v to_o any_o prayer_n to_o put_v by_o or_o atone_v for_o till_z instead_o of_o go_v on_o therein_o they_o true_o repent_v of_o the_o same_o and_o turn_v away_o from_o they_o and_o when_o any_o guide_n come_v to_o recommend_v and_o justify_v these_o to_o man_n and_o to_o vacate_v all_o those_o moral_a precept_n which_o shall_v make_v they_o uneasy_a and_o afraid_a to_o be_v find_v therein_o then_o be_v the_o enemy_n approach_v and_o gild_n and_o death_n stand_v gape_v to_o devour_v they_o and_o then_o they_o who_o watch_v for_o soul_n ought_v certain_o to_o administer_v the_o word_n of_o warn_v and_o to_o see_v that_o the_o people_n do_v not_o secure_o sin_n and_o perish_v for_o want_v of_o their_o blow_v the_o trumpet_n and_o giving_z notice_n and_o the_o blood_n of_o those_o soul_n will_v be_v require_v at_o their_o hand_n shall_v they_o treacherous_o keep_v silent_a and_o fail_v to_o preach_v and_o warn_v their_o charge_n on_o such_o occasion_n 2._o as_o overseer_n or_o inspector_n take_v heed_n to_o the_o flock_n over_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v you_o overseer_n act._n 20._o 28._o take_v the_o oversight_n thereof_o willing_o and_o of_o a_o ready_a mind_n 1_o pet._n 5._o 2._o now_o the_o overseer_n of_o soul_n be_v to_o be_v a_o overseer_n of_o their_o worship_n or_o of_o what_o they_o do_v in_o god_n house_n of_o their_o life_n and_o practice_n how_o they_o demean_v themselves_o in_o those_o duty_n which_o god_n will_v require_v a_o account_n of_o of_o their_o faith_n how_o they_o retain_v the_o belief_n and_o profession_n of_o his_o truth_n and_o of_o any_o spiritual_a want_n or_o danger_n or_o other_o thing_n whereon_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n depend_v and_o the_o part_n of_o these_o overseer_n be_v from_o time_n to_o time_n to_o observe_v what_o their_o want_n or_o danger_n be_v either_o in_o worship_n faith_n and_o practice_n etc._n etc._n and_o to_o minister_v provision_n and_o supply_n against_o they_o their_o eye_n be_v to_o be_v over_o they_o for_o these_o purpose_n the_o oversight_n which_o they_o have_v undertake_v be_v a_o oversight_n of_o care_n and_o kindness_n for_o the_o right_a conduct_n and_o salvation_n of_o their_o charge_n according_o as_o overseer_n they_o be_v call_v upon_o to_o take_v heed_n to_o their_o flock_n or_o to_o espye_n and_o provide_v against_o any_o harm_n that_o be_v come_v upon_o they_o and_o when_o they_o be_v in_o any_o spiritual_a want_n either_o of_o worship_n or_o doctrine_n or_o of_o other_o ghostly_a provision_n which_o be_v in_o their_o power_n to_o supply_v they_o withal_o to_o feed_v they_o therewith_o or_o to_o minister_v it_o to_o they_o feed_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n whereof_o you_o have_v take_v the_o oversight_n say_v st._n peter_n 1_o pet._n 5._o 2._o and_o take_v heed_n to_o all_o the_o flock_n to_o feed_v the_o church_n over_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v you_o overseer_n yea_o such_o heed_n as_o befit_v the_o oversight_n of_o the_o most_o invaluable_a thing_n this_o church_n be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o a_o church_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v with_o his_o own_o blood_n act._n 20._o 28._o and_o this_o feed_v of_o their_o spiritual_a want_n be_v feed_v they_o with_o their_o spiritual_a ministration_n those_o be_v the_o proper_a food_n of_o soul_n so_o that_o to_o show_v themselves_o faithful_a overseer_n when_o the_o foresay_a immorality_n be_v introduce_v into_o the_o worship_n the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n they_o must_v take_v heed_n both_o to_o espy_v the_o gild_n and_o danger_n thereof_o and_o to_o supply_v the_o church_n with_o better_a and_o more_o wholesome_a ministration_n 3_o as_o guide_n or_o leader_n remember_v 〈◊〉_d your_o guide_n or_o those_o that_o have_v the_o guidance_n or_o rule_n over_o you_o heb._n 13._o 7._o 17._o and_o our_o saviour_n call_v the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n those_o ignorant_a and_o mistake_v pastor_n blind_a 〈◊〉_d guide_n or_o leader_n mat._n 23._o 16_o 24._o and_o mat._n 15._o 14._o now_o the_o business_n of_o guide_n of_o soul_n be_v to_o show_v they_o god_n way_n and_o to_o carry_v they_o on_o in_o the_o same_o and_o to_o keep_v they_o out_o of_o such_o as_o be_v evil_a and_o destructive_a to_o they_o in_o all_o thing_n where_o they_o be_v set_v to_o direct_v they_o must_v show_v they_o the_o right_n and_o lead_v they_o on_o in_o it_o as_o their_o leader_n in_o what_o be_v good_a and_o call_v out_o to_o they_o when_o they_o be_v go_v wrong_a and_o show_v they_o the_o danger_n of_o hold_v on_o therein_o they_o must_v not_o be_v ignorant_a or_o mistake_v the_o way_n themselves_o which_o be_v to_o be_v blind_a guide_n as_o our_o saviour_n tax_v the_o pharisee_n mat._n 23._o 16._o and_o when_o they_o see_v the_o right_n they_o must_v not_o conceal_v or_o dissemble_v it_o but_o be_v to_o be_v guide_n which_o speak_v to_o their_o people_n the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n or_o tell_v they_o what_o he_o call_v right_o heb._n 13._o 17._o and_o this_o they_o must_v do_v with_o all_o carefulness_n see_v that_o none_o miscarry_v or_o perish_v for_o want_n of_o guidance_n but_o only_o for_o be_v deaf_a thereto_o and_o contumacious_a against_o all_o their_o call_n wherein_o they_o must_v demean_v themselves_o as_o they_o that_o watch_v for_o soul_n and_o must_v give_v a_o account_n thereof_o as_o the_o apostle_n there_o say_v now_o as_o guide_n of_o soul_n they_o be_v to_o direct_v and_o lead_v they_o in_o acceptable_a and_o save_a worship_n doctrine_n and_o practice_n
hear_v they_o mistaught_a by_o seducer_n and_o instead_o of_o stop_v their_o mouth_n give_v way_n to_o gain-sayers_n who_o lip_n do_v not_o preserve_v and_o keep_v up_o knowledge_n among_o the_o people_n but_o suppress_v and_o conceal_v it_o from_o they_o and_o who_o instead_o of_o seek_v shun_v the_o season_n of_o minister_a the_o word_n and_o of_o give_v god_n people_n the_o necessary_a instruction_n how_o will_v they_o hope_v to_o approve_v themselves_o at_o that_o day_n as_o have_v be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n if_o they_o hold_v this_o light_n as_o dark-lanthorn_n minister_a none_o to_o the_o world_n but_o let_v it_o sit_v still_o in_o darkness_n or_o as_o the_o salt_n of_o the_o earth_n if_o by_o pure_a and_o wholesome_a ministration_n they_o do_v not_o season_v the_o inhabitant_n thereof_o but_o suffer_v they_o for_o want_v of_o season_v to_o run_v into_o spiritual_a corruption_n and_o putrefaction_n if_o they_o appear_v then_o to_o have_v be_v such_o salt_n as_o do_v nothing_o to_o keep_v out_o corruption_n they_o will_v be_v in_o place_n of_o salt_n without_o savour_n as_o our_o bless_a lord_n say_v or_o of_o insipid_a salt_n and_o such_o instead_o of_o be_v set_v by_o and_o careful_o lay_v up_o he_o declare_v to_o be_v good_a for_o nothing_o but_o to_o be_v cast_v out_o and_o tread_v under_o foot_n mat._n 5._o 13._o so_o that_o all_o the_o part_n and_o office_n the_o title_n and_o character_n of_o their_o own_o sacred_a power_n do_v most_o full_o and_o loud_o proclaim_v to_o they_o the_o duty_n of_o exercise_v their_o spiritual_a function_n and_o discharge_v their_o holy_a ministration_n in_o the_o foresay_a case_n and_o let_v they_o but_o look_v to_o any_o of_o those_o mark_n of_o power_n and_o care_n which_o god_n have_v put_v upon_o they_o or_o to_o any_o of_o those_o station_n wherein_o he_o have_v place_v they_o and_o they_o will_v effectual_o remind_v they_o how_o much_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o stir_v up_o the_o gift_n that_o be_v in_o they_o when_o they_o see_v religion_n wrong_v and_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n endanger_v by_o immoral_a worship_n and_o doctrine_n or_o by_o other_o great_a invasion_n on_o christian_a worship_n faith_n or_o practice_n indeed_o the_o necessity_n of_o supply_v the_o church_n with_o this_o pure_a worship_n faith_n and_o practice_n be_v think_v by_o some_o to_o go_v a_o great_a way_n in_o confer_v the_o ministerial_a power_n on_o those_o who_o otherwise_o will_v not_o have_v they_o and_o this_o be_v the_o plea_n for_o the_o collation_n of_o the_o ministerial_a power_n by_o ordination_n of_o presbyrer_n without_o episcopal_a imposition_n of_o hand_n in_o some_o foreign_a church_n but_o not_o to_o examine_v that_o here_o whatever_o force_n and_o effect_v it_o have_v in_o that_o case_n of_o confer_v the_o ministerial_a power_n on_o those_o who_o have_v they_o not_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o sure_a call_v to_o the_o exercise_n thereof_o to_o those_o who_o have_v they_o and_o be_v endow_v therewith_o i_o do_v not_o say_v all_o man_n be_v equal_o bind_v by_o the_o foresay_a character_n to_o exercise_v these_o gift_n nor_o that_o the_o same_o man_n be_v equal_o bind_v to_o it_o in_o all_o place_n the_o bless_a apostle_n have_v general_a commission_n and_o be_v send_v out_o express_o to_o all_o nation_n mat._n 28._o 19_o other_o bishop_n have_v a_o more_o limit_a inspection_n and_o aught_o to_o be_v more_o especial_o watchful_a over_o their_o own_o diocese_n have_v more_o particular_o undertake_v the_o charge_n thereof_o but_o yet_o so_o as_o to_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o 4._o catholic_n church_n and_o for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o catholic_n worship_n and_o faith_n who_o be_v therefore_o under_o obligation_n of_o keep_v these_o up_o as_o far_o as_o they_o can_v when_o they_o be_v sink_v and_o overbear_v in_o other_o place_n indeed_o in_o this_o ministration_n they_o be_v not_o to_o stand_v on_o punctilio_n of_o obligation_n do_v no_o more_o than_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v they_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v in_o rigour_n of_o justice_n but_o they_o be_v to_o show_v zeal_n and_o affection_n which_o do_v not_o weigh_v grain_n but_o think_v that_o a_o call_v where_o it_o can_v do_v religion_n and_o its_o master_n any_o considerable_a service_n and_o that_o the_o more_o of_o this_o it_o can_v do_v the_o better_a it_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o love_n and_o zeal_n be_v the_o spirit_n which_o god_n require_v in_o pastor_n to_o direct_v and_o influence_n their_o spiritual_a exercise_n and_o administration_n love_v thou_o i_o say_v christ_n to_o peter_n repeat_v this_o to_o he_o three_o time_n when_o he_o charge_v he_o with_o the_o pastoral_n office_n of_o feed_v his_o sheep_n and_o his_o lamb_n jo._n 21._o 15_o 16_o 17._o by_o the_o put_n on_o of_o hand_n in_o order_n the_o spirit_n which_o god_n have_v give_v we_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o love_n to_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n and_o of_o power_n or_o firmness_n and_o fearlesness_n of_o what_o evil_a may_v befall_v ourselves_o in_o prosecution_n thereof_o say_v st._n paul_n 2_o tim._n 1._o 7._o the_o charge_n of_o feed_v the_o flock_n or_o the_o oversight_n which_o they_o take_v be_v not_o a_o unwilling_a charge_n such_o as_o will_v go_v no_o further_o than_o it_o be_v compel_v but_o require_v a_o willing_a and_o a_o ready_a mind_n that_o on_o any_o call_v be_v free_a and_o prompt_v of_o itself_o to_o discharge_v it_o 1_o pet._n 5._o 2._o and_o this_o spirit_n of_o love_n and_o zeal_n and_o power_n which_o be_v the_o principle_n of_o their_o ministration_n stand_v not_o upon_o strict_a term_n but_o be_v full_a of_o care_n for_o christ_n and_o for_o the_o good_a of_o soul_n and_o fearless_a of_o what_o may_v thereby_o befall_v ourselves_o do_v more_o or_o less_o according_a as_o its_o measure_n and_o degree_n be_v st._n paul_n have_v a_o great_a measure_n thereof_o and_o according_a to_o the_o degree_n of_o its_o work_n in_o he_o mighty_o he_o labour_v and_o strive_v earnest_o in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n that_o he_o may_v present_v every_o man_n perfect_a in_o christ_n col._n 1._o 28_o 29._o he_o dispute_v not_o nice_o how_o far_o he_o be_v bind_v but_o will_v ready_o go_v beyond_o the_o strict_a term_n count_v whatever_o be_v the_o overplus_a that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v expect_v from_o this_o principle_n of_o love_n and_o zeal_n in_o his_o master_n cause_n and_o will_v abundant_o be_v make_v up_o by_o a_o surpass_a recompense_n if_o i_o do_v this_o thing_n willing_o or_o beyond_o strict_a command_n or_o necessity_n say_v he_o speak_v of_o some_o thing_n in_o the_o course_n of_o his_o ministration_n which_o he_o be_v not_o strict_o bind_v to_o i_o have_v a_o special_a reward_n for_o so_o do_v 1_o cor._n 9_o 15_o 17._o and_o proportionable_a to_o the_o degree_n of_o this_o love_n and_o zeal_n in_o other_o will_v the_o measure_n of_o their_o service_n and_o ministration_n be_v likewise_o they_o will_v still_o in_o any_o place_n be_v more_o active_a to_o keep_v up_o the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o worship_n according_a as_o they_o be_v more_o perfect_a in_o this_o ministerial_a or_o pastoral_a spirit_n and_o thus_o at_o length_n i_o think_v it_o may_v full_o appear_v that_o christ_n faithful_a minister_n be_v on_o many_o account_n oblige_v not_o to_o suppress_v their_o ministration_n but_o to_o supply_v the_o church_n therewith_o when_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o prevent_v a_o people_n be_v nurse_v up_o in_o irreligious_a and_o destructive_a way_n like_v as_o be_v not_o only_a idolatry_n and_o speculative_a heresy_n but_o also_o immoral_a doctrine_n and_o practice_n and_o immoral_a worship_n and_o devotion_n and_o therefore_o shall_v those_o thing_n prove_v immorality_n which_o on_o any_o revolution_n happen_v to_o be_v justify_v in_o any_o kingdom_n and_o be_v every_o where_o press_a and_o recommend_v to_o the_o people_n practice_n and_o be_v salve_v by_o the_o foresay_a or_o such_o like_a new_a doctrine_n and_o be_v bring_v into_o prayer_n and_o public_a office_n and_o devotion_n in_o those_o country_n the_o deprive_a bishop_n and_o clergy_n in_o that_o state_n will_v be_v under_o all_o these_o obigation_n to_o exercise_v their_o function_n and_o to_o minister_v to_o the_o church_n in_o those_o case_n and_o this_o will_v absolute_o set_v aside_o the_o argument_n from_o the_o forecited_a say_n of_o clemens_n and_o dionysius_n and_o chrysestom_n and_o nazianzen_n for_o the_o cessation_n of_o rightful_a bishop_n to_o the_o intrude_a anti-bishop_n for_o these_o cessation_n be_v in_o a_o cause_n that_o concern_v only_o personal_a right_n not_o that_o touch_v the_o interest_n of_o religion_n or_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n and_o without_o examine_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o particular_a history_n wherein_o be_v error_n enough_o as_o other_o have_v make_v appear_v it_o
which_o be_v to_o show_v themselves_o silly_a s●e●p_n indeed_o and_o prepare_v for_o destruction_n but_o to_o run_v away_o from_o they_o not_o to_o give_v ear_n to_o false-teacher_n and_o false-prop●●●s_a but_o to_o keep-out_a of_o their_o hear_v and_o shut_v their_o ea●●_n against_o the●_n and_o last_o not_o to_o strike_v in_o with_o those_o that_o cause_n division_n but_o to_o 〈◊〉_d they_o as_o st._n paul_n teach_v and_o as_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n have_v still_o require_v faithful_a christian_n to_o do_v by_o the_o maker_n of_o schism_n bid_v he_o not_o god_n speed_n nor_o receive_v the_o bri●g●●_n of_o false_a doctrine_n into_o your_o house_n 2_o jo._n 10_o 11._o beware_v of_o false-prophet_n as_o of_o raven_a wolf_n mat._n 7._o 15._o keep_v not_o company_n with_o disorderly_a walker_n who_o adhere_v not_o to_o the_o tradition_n they_o receive_v of_o we_o 2_o thes._n 3._o 6_o 14._o mark_v ●●●m_n which_o cause_v division_n and_o offence_n in_o break_v off_o and_o go_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n which_o you_o have_v learn_v and_o avoid_v they_o ro._n 16._o 17._o these_o and_o such_o like_a be_v the_o scripture_n ri●●es_v in_o these_o case_n which_o call_v the_o servant_n of_o christ_n to_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o those_o who_o have_v first_o separate_v and_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o his_o worship_n and_o doctrine_n and_o instead_o of_o they_o to_o adhere_v to_o other_o who_o as_o his_o true_a minister_n and_o faithful_a pastor_n stick_v true_a to_o the_o same_o and_o administer_v they_o pure_a and_o uncorrupt_a to_o his_o church_n whereof_o i_o shall_v give_v a_o further_a account_n 5._o afterward_o part_n ii_o of_o deprivation_n by_o civil_a state_n or_o ecclesiastical_a synod_n chap._n 1._o of_o the_o force_n of_o state_n deprivation_n in_o the_o foresay_a case_n hitherto_o i_o have_v endeavour_v to_o mark_v out_o the_o case_n wherein_o the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o christ_n church_n be_v bind_v to_o exercise_v their_o ministerial_a power_n and_o to_o proceed_v on_o due_o in_o their_o administration_n and_o to_o set_v forth_o the_o great_a and_o manifold_a obligation_n which_o be_v incumbent_a on_o they_o in_o those_o case_n and_o have_v thus_o lay_v out_o their_o obligation_n i_o shall_v next_o consider_v the_o restraint_n which_o at_o such_o time_n be_v most_o pleadable_a in_o these_o case_n by_o show_v 2._o second_o of_o what_o force_n a_o deprivation_n of_o state_n or_o the_o preservation_n of_o external_n communion_n and_o peace_n in_o the_o church_n aught_o to_o be_v in_o debar_v they_o thereof_o 1._o first_o one_o great_a thing_n that_o may_v be_v allege_v to_o silence_v faithful_a bishop_n and_o minister_n of_o god_n pure_a worship_n and_o righteousness_n and_o to_o stop_v the_o course_n of_o their_o ministration_n in_o the_o foresay_a case_n be_v a_o deprivation_n of_o state_n when_o the_o secular_a power_n by_o its_o law_n and_o interdict_v forbid_v those_o ministration_n and_o remove_v they_o from_o their_o see_v putting_z other_o into_o their_o place_n for_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n as_o they_o be_v minister_n of_o christ_n so_o be_v they_o also_o subject_n of_o the_o state_n and_o therefore_o as_o some_o think_v ought_v not_o to_o exercise_v their_o ministry_n at_o least_o not_o among_o their_o subject_n nor_o in_o any_o diocese_n of_o their_o dominion_n in_o opposition_n to_o it_o and_o in_o christian_a kingdom_n the_o church_n be_v incorporate_v into_o the_o state_n and_o by_o the_o benefit_n of_o this_o incorporation_n bishop_n and_o pastor_n have_v their_o spiritual_a ministration_n back_v with_o secular_a effect_n and_o censure_n as_o excommunication_n among_o we_o make_v liable_a to_o temporal_a imprisonment_n and_o incapacitates_fw-la from_o carry_v on_o any_o civil_a suit_n or_o action_n in_o the_o civil_a court_n they_o have_v also_o their_o jurisdiction_n extend_v thereby_o to_o some_o secular_a matter_n as_o the_o bishop_n court_n be_v to_o matter_n of_o will_n marriage_n benefice_n etc._n etc._n and_o be_v encourage_v therein_o by_o secular_a benefice_n honour_n and_o freehold_v now_o all_o these_o secular_a fortification_n jurisdiction_n and_o encouragement_n in_o their_o ministration_n confer_v on_o the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o a_o incorporate_a church_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o state_n and_o be_v secular_a addition_n to_o what_o spiritual_a power_n they_o receive_v from_o jesus_n christ._n and_o what_o the_o state_n give_v the_o state_n when_o it_o see_v cause_n may_v deprive_v they_o of_o so_o that_o incorporate_a ministration_n or_o administer_a these_o spiritual_a power_n in_o the_o mix_a and_o fortify_v way_n of_o a_o incorporate_a church_n may_v seem_v as_o some_o will_v argue_v more_o subject_a to_o the_o state_n to_o take_v out_o of_o some_o and_o to_o put_v into_o other_o hand_n especial_o consider_v that_o in_o grateful_a return_n and_o commutation_n for_o the_o benefit_n of_o incorporation_n or_o for_o be_v make_v free_a of_o the_o state_n and_o have_v the_o secular_a accession_n the_o church_n by_o compromise_n have_v part_v with_o some_o of_o its_o privilege_n to_o the_o civil_a power_n thus_o since_o the_o incorporation_n have_v it_o in_o compliance_n give_v up_o to_o the_o state_n the_o nomination_n of_o bishop_n and_o metropolitan_n belong_v ancient_o to_o the_o other_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n or_o to_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o rule_v agree_v on_o in_o synod_n shall_v be_v no_o canon_n till_o they_o be_v approve_v and_o ratify_v by_o the_o prince_n and_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o admission_n or_o refusal_n of_o clerk_n to_o cure_n or_o use_v of_o discipline_n but_o in_o consistence_n with_o and_o under_o regulation_n of_o the_o king_n prerogative_n and_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n and_o the_o like_a and_o by_o these_o cession_n they_o may_v seem_v as_o some_o think_v to_o have_v cut_v off_o all_o power_n of_o contest_v the_o state_n nomination_n or_o advancement_n to_o church_n or_o its_o deprivation_n and_o removal_n from_o they_o as_o have_v by_o their_o account_n give_v up_o these_o privilege_n in_o way_n of_o bargain_n and_o exchange_n to_o keep_v on_o the_o benefit_n and_o state_n enjoyment_n of_o a_o incorporate_a church_n but_o as_o to_o this_o regard_n which_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v to_o state_n deprivation_n in_o bar_n of_o the_o foresay_a ministration_n i_o observe_v 1._o first_o that_o this_o regard_n be_v to_o be_v press_v only_o under_o a_o suppose_a legal_a and_o rightful_a state_n for_o it_o be_v to_o their_o rightful_a prince_n that_o as_o good_a and_o faithful_a subject_n they_o owe_v all_o their_o obedience_n which_o be_v call_v for_o in_o these_o case_n what_o regard_v they_o be_v to_o pay_v as_o subject_n must_v be_v to_o his_o deprivation_n but_o not_o if_o they_o be_v deprive_v by_o a_o usurper_n set_v up_o against_o he_o who_o real_o have_v no_o regal_a authority_n over_o they_o but_o only_o pretend_v to_o it_o and_o assume_v a_o power_n which_o be_v none_o of_o his_o own_o especial_o if_o he_o shall_v deprive_v they_o for_o their_o adherence_n to_o their_o lawful_a king_n as_o if_o athaliah_n have_v deprive_v jehojadah_n for_o adhere_v to_o joash_n his_o true_a sovereign_n or_o as_o the_o rebellious_a parliament_n do_v depose_v not_o only_o the_o bishop_n and_o episcopal_a clergy_n those_o faithful_a adherer_n to_o the_o crown_n but_o episcopacy_n itself_o in_o king_n charles_n the_o first_o be_v time_o for_o then_o as_o there_o be_v no_o real_a authority_n to_o bind_v on_o so_o neither_o will_v there_o be_v any_o equity_n or_o colour_n of_o law_n to_o back_o such_o a_o deprivation_n or_o to_o oblige_v the_o sufferer_n to_o acquiesce_v therein_o the_o law_n which_o still_o support_v the_o right_a of_o the_o lawful_a king_n against_o his_o usurpation_n must_v needs_o support_v the_o right_n of_o all_o his_o adherent_n against_o the_o same_o and_o as_o still_o he_o will_v be_v the_o legal_a king_n so_o will_v they_o not_o only_o be_v the_o real_a but_o in_o eye_n of_o law_n the_o legal_a pastor_n not_o withstand_v his_o forcible_n removal_n of_o they_o and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o room_n for_o this_o regard_n to_o a_o deprivation_n of_o state_n on_o the_o plea_n of_o a_o king_n de_fw-fr facto_fw-la or_o on_o supposal_n of_o unrighteous_a usurpation_n the_o legal_a right_n assert_v still_o by_o the_o public_a act_n on_o such_o revolution_n will_v give_v it_o place_n to_o go_v as_o far_o as_o it_o can_v but_o as_o for_o all_o those_o who_o give_v up_o the_o legal_a right_n it_o be_v not_o for_o any_o of_o they_o and_o it_o be_v well_o know_v how_o considerable_a a_o part_n they_o make_v among_o the_o writer_n as_o well_o as_o among_o the_o practiser_n in_o this_o point_n to_o urge_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o deprivation_n of_o state_n in_o this_o question_n 2._o second_o a_o deprivation_n of_o a_o lawful_a
episcopal_a throne_n and_o give_v the_o other_o possession_n thereof_o and_o barbarous_o enforce_v submission_n and_o adherence_n to_o they_o from_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n as_o be_v do_v by_o 817._o philagrius_n 867._o syrianus_n and_o etc._n heraclius_n to_o omit_v other_o but_o these_o stateinhibition_n and_o deprivation_n come_v on_o he_o &_o his_o adherent_n not_o for_o any_o other_o crime_n allege_v which_o be_v shameless_a falsehood_n and_o assume_v mere_o as_o pretence_n but_o in_o reality_n only_o for_o his_o be_v a_o stout_a asserter_n of_o the_o orthodox_n faith_n he_o still_o go_v on_o preach_v and_o minister_a the_o same_o and_o for_o all_o these_o state-ejections_a be_v stick_v to_o therein_o by_o the_o faithful_a egyptian_n and_o by_o the_o orthodox_n in_o all_o other_o place_n and_o thus_o also_o our_o own_o ancestor_n continue_v to_o do_v on_o the_o state_n turn_v upon_o they_o and_o under_o forfeiture_n of_o incorporation_n and_o all_o the_o penalty_n of_o a_o bloody_a persecution_n forbid_v they_o to_o go_v on_o administer_a the_o word_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o reformation_n thereof_o make_v by_o king_n edward_n in_o queen_n mary_n time_n for_o be_v to_o administer_v this_o word_n and_o worship_n in_o duty_n to_o god_n and_o in_o care_n of_o soul_n they_o set_v light_a by_o the_o benefit_n of_o incorporation_n and_o civil_a advantage_n and_o pay_v no_o regard_n to_o state-deprivations_a or_o inhibition_n but_o go_v on_o faithful_o to_o administer_v the_o same_o though_o at_o the_o peril_n of_o their_o life_n i_o grant_v the_o desire_n of_o keep_v on_o the_o public_a benefit_n of_o incorporation_n may_v many_o time_n be_v a_o reason_n for_o bishop_n and_o minister_n voluntary_o to_o rest_v under_o state-deprivations_a and_o inhibition_n when_o it_o be_v a_o case_n only_o of_o personal_a right_n and_o privilege_n such_o deprivation_n and_o inhibition_n often_o affect_v person_n only_o and_o not_o thing_n when_o on_o the_o deprivation_n of_o one_o the_o same_o ministration_n will_v be_v keep_v up_o by_o other_o as_o be_v do_v in_o the_o deposition_n of_o high-priest_n so_o common_a in_o late_a time_n among_o the_o jew_n and_o of_o patriarch_n so_o ordinary_a at_o present_a among_o the_o greek_n and_o may_v happen_v in_o other_o place_n in_o all_o which_o there_o be_v only_o a_o change_n of_o person_n but_o no_o change_n in_o ministration_n the_o church_n be_v lead_v on_o in_o the_o same_o necessary_a worship_n doctrine_n and_o practice_n under_o both_o and_o here_o to_o prevent_v a_o breach_n with_o the_o state_n and_o to_o keep_v on_o the_o way_n of_o spiritual_a ministration_n with_o the_o benefit_n of_o secular_a accession_n the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o a_o incorporate_a church_n where_o it_o be_v not_o like_a to_o do_v the_o church_n more_o hurt_v by_o a_o utter_a loss_n of_o its_o liberty_n in_o these_o point_n than_o the_o incorporation_n desire_v will_n compensate_a may_v think_v there_o be_v more_o cause_n for_o the_o church_n sake_n to_o rest_v under_o state-deprivations_a they_o may_v esteem_v it_o their_o part_n to_o quit_v their_o own_o particular_a interest_n to_o advance_v the_o church_n and_o believe_v that_o the_o keep_n on_o the_o public_a benefit_n of_o incorporation_n will_v abundant_o compensate_a for_o the_o wrongful_a encroachment_n make_v by_o such_o deprivation_n on_o a_o private_a person_n but_o in_o case_n which_o concern_v not_o only_o the_o personal_a right_n and_o privilege_n of_o pastor_n but_o the_o substance_n of_o religion_n or_o the_o safety_n of_o soul_n and_o where_o christ_n require_v they_o shall_v exercise_v their_o ministration_n as_o i_o have_v show_v he_o do_v in_o the_o foresay_a case_n they_o must_v not_o let_v they_o fall_v in_o regard_n to_o any_o inhibition_n or_o deprivation_n even_o of_o their_o lawful_a prince_n they_o must_v here_o slight_v all_o worldly_a benefit_n of_o protection_n and_o be_v willing_a if_o need_v require_v to_o undergo_v a_o persecution_n and_o go_v on_o faithful_o in_o their_o ministration_n as_o their_o bind_a duty_n require_v and_o as_o in_o these_o case_n god_n faithful_a minister_n have_v do_v in_o all_o time_n 2._o second_o what_o be_v so_o give_v up_o by_o the_o church_n for_o abridgement_n of_o its_o own_o power_n in_o spiritual_a ministration_n be_v only_o whilst_o it_o keep_v unite_v to_o the_o state_n and_o receive_v protection_n not_o when_o it_o be_v separate_v from_o it_o again_o or_o fall_v under_o persecution_n its_o recession_n as_o i_o note_v be_v on_o consideration_n of_o state_n benefit_n and_o as_o a_o grateful_a return_n for_o they_o whilst_o it_o be_v suffer_v to_o enjoy_v they_o they_o be_v all_o upon_o the_o score_n of_o its_o union_n and_o so_o cease_v when_o the_o state_n break_v off_o and_o turn_v it_o up_o to_o itself_o again_o for_o be_v make_v separate_v it_o be_v no_o long_o under_o any_o former_a tie_n of_o incorporation_n but_o act_n again_o with_o the_o power_n of_o a_o separate_a condition_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v when_o instead_o of_o protect_v the_o state_n put_v any_o necessary_a point_n of_o doctrine_n or_o worship_n or_o part_n of_o their_o ministration_n under_o persecution_n when_o it_o separate_v its_o protection_n it_o separate_v itself_o it_o drive_v out_o the_o church_n when_o it_o drive_v out_o any_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o church_n must_v stick_v to_o at_o all_o peril_n and_o when_o instead_o of_o incorporate_n or_o civil_o protect_v the_o ministration_n thereof_o it_o fall_v to_o incorporate_v and_o to_o protect_v the_o ministration_n of_o error_n and_o wickedness_n in_o their_o place_n it_o disfranchise_n pure_a worship_n and_o doctrine_n when_o it_o enfranchise_n error_n and_o corruption_n contrary_a to_o they_o and_o by_o turn_v to_o persecute_v the_o necessary_a ministration_n of_o pure_a religion_n it_o break_v itself_o from_o they_o and_o thence_o forward_o they_o be_v no_o long_o one_o but_o become_v two_o again_o so_o that_o whatever_o regard_n and_o compliance_n the_o bishop_n and_o minister_n of_o christ_n may_v show_v to_o such_o deprivation_n and_o inhibition_n of_o the_o state_n whereinto_o they_o be_v incorporate_v whilst_o it_o inhibit_v no_o necessary_a ministration_n to_o religion_n or_o to_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n but_z in_o discharge_v all_o those_o they_o enjoy_v the_o privilege_n and_o protection_n thereof_o yet_o be_v they_o not_o to_o be_v discharge_v thereby_o from_o minister_a to_o the_o same_o in_o all_o the_o foresay_a or_o other_o like_a case_n nor_o to_o be_v debar_v of_o any_o of_o their_o spiritual_a power_n after_o once_o the_o state_n break_v with_o they_o and_o instead_o of_o yield_v they_o the_o benefit_n of_o incorporation_n put_v they_o under_o persecution_n but_o then_o they_o must_v exercise_v these_o ministration_n only_o according_a to_o what_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o christ_n and_o from_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n so_o far_o as_o they_o do_v not_o interfere_v with_o any_o innocent_a state_n law_n which_o restrain_v they_o as_o good_a subject_n not_o with_o any_o civil_a fortification_n and_o state_n accession_n chap._n ii_o of_o the_o king_n ecclesiastical_a supremacy_n receive_v and_o assert_v by_o our_o church_n and_o all_o this_o agree_v well_o with_o the_o ecclesiastical_a supremacy_n own_a by_o our_o church_n and_o claim_v by_o our_o prince_n anglic_a conformable_a to_o what_o be_v ascribe_v to_o and_o claim_v by_o the_o godly_a king_n among_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o godly_a emperor_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n who_o ecclesiastical_a sovereignty_n lie_v not_o in_o their_o be_v invest_v with_o or_o in_o their_o have_v a_o sovereign_a disposal_n of_o the_o power_n of_o order_n but_o in_o retain_v their_o civil_a sovereignty_n over_o all_o person_n whether_o layman_n or_o ecclesiastic_n and_o in_o the_o subordination_n of_o ecclesiastical_a court_n and_o cause_n which_o be_v content_a to_o act_v in_o subordination_n on_o the_o score_n of_o their_o secular_a mixture_n as_o in_o beneficiary_a matter_n censure_n etc._n etc._n and_o for_o cognizance_n of_o either_o of_o these_o either_o of_o person_n or_o cause_n in_o bar_v all_o foreign_a appeal_n 1._o first_o it_o lie_v not_o i_o say_v in_o their_o be_v invest_v with_o or_o have_v a_o sovereign_a disposal_n of_o the_o power_n of_o order_n for_o these_o our_o king_n do_v not_o pretend_v to_o have_v in_o their_o power_n or_o to_o be_v power_n subject_v and_o inherent_a in_o themselves_o but_o to_o be_v proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o spiritual_a person_n thus_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o when_o he_o assert_v his_o own_o regal_a supremacy_n over_o the_o church_n leave_v all_o proper_a spiritual_a power_n and_o function_n to_o spiritual_a person_n and_o in_o the_o 1._o statute_n for_o restraint_n of_o appeal_n declare_v the_o spiritualty_n sufficient_a and_o meet_v to_o declare_v and_o determine_v all_o such_o doubt_n and_o to_o administer_v all_o such_o
suffer_v with_o patience_n under_o they_o when_o they_o punish_v and_o persecute_v they_o not_o for_o break_v but_o for_o faithful_o perform_v of_o the_o same_o and_o this_o be_v to_o leave_v the_o civil_a power_n to_o be_v chief_a in_o all_o civil_a matter_n and_o to_o have_v several_a prerogative_n of_o sovereignty_n in_o spiritual_a so_o long_o as_o they_o proceed_v with_o civil_a mixture_n that_o be_v to_o be_v supreme_a in_o all_o which_o it_o can_v call_v its_o own_o though_o at_o the_o same_o time_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v hold_v superior_a to_o christ_n nor_o must_v be_v think_v entrust_v with_o the_o supreme_a disposal_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n wherein_o man_n be_v empower_v of_o christ_n by_o another_o sort_n of_o commission_n and_o from_o all_o these_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o it_o be_v no_o revival_n of_o the_o abolish_v papal_a usurpation_n for_o these_o lay_v not_o in_o the_o bishop_n assert_v as_o be_v aforesaid_a of_o their_o own_o pure_a spiritual_a power_n or_o of_o their_o own_o indefeasible_a obligation_n notwithstanding_o any_o state_n inhibition_n and_o deprivation_n to_o exercise_v they_o for_o the_o service_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o church_n as_o christ_n require_v they_o shall_v in_o the_o forementioned_a and_o other_o like_a case_n for_o this_o be_v no_o more_o than_o have_v be_v do_v by_o the_o holy_a apostle_n and_o by_o all_o faithful_a bishop_n and_o minister_n in_o all_o age_n but_o in_o their_o claim_v a_o independency_n on_o the_o state_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o spiritual_a power_n and_o ministration_n mix_v and_o endow_v with_o the_o borrow_a adjunct_n of_o secular_a benefice_n and_o jurisdiction_n and_o in_o their_o profess_v a_o dependence_n therein_o upon_o the_o pope_n seek_v to_o he_o for_o investiture_n and_o confirmation_n and_o make_v he_o the_o last_o judge_n by_o appeal_n as_o also_o depend_v on_o he_o for_o convene_a synod_n for_o pass_v and_o confirm_v canon_n and_o grant_v dispensation_n from_o they_o and_o for_o other_o matter_n which_o for_o their_o civil_a endowment_n of_o church_n be_v grant_v to_o christian_a prince_n and_o by_o incorporation_n accrue_v to_o the_o crown_n and_o last_o in_o their_o challenge_v a_o exemption_n of_o their_o person_n from_o civil_a cognizance_n so_o as_o not_o to_o be_v answerable_a in_o civil_a court_n and_o coercible_a there_o by_o civil_a penalty_n even_o for_o state-matter_n and_o offence_n and_o the_o retrench_a of_o these_o usurpation_n be_v the_o business_n of_o our_o reformer_n but_o as_o for_o the_o independence_n of_o the_o ecclesiastic_n mere_n spiritual_a power_n and_o their_o obligation_n to_o exercise_v they_o in_o any_o case_n as_o may_v answer_v the_o command_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o not_o the_o contrary_a inclination_n or_o inhibition_n of_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n they_o be_v as_o far_o from_o intend_v as_o from_o need_v to_o reform_v it_o yea_o soon_o after_o they_o be_v most_o glorious_a asserter_n thereof_o in_o all_o their_o ministration_n for_o the_o service_n of_o soul_n and_o for_o the_o support_n of_o truth_n which_o they_o discharge_v against_o the_o deprivation_n and_o inhibition_n of_o the_o state_n as_o confessor_n and_o martyr_n during_o all_o the_o persecution_n of_o queen_n marys_n reign_n 3._o three_o nor_o be_v this_o to_o mistake_v or_o to_o overlook_a the_o condition_n of_o a_o incorporate_a church_n but_o only_o not_o to_o overvalue_v the_o civil_a benefit_n of_o incorporation_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n to_o undervalue_n their_o obligation_n to_o christ_n to_o the_o ministery_n of_o religion_n and_o to_o the_o soul_n of_o men._n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o pastor_n and_o people_n shall_v keep_v obedient_a and_o true_a to_o christ_n but_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o they_o shall_v keep_v in_o the_o favour_n of_o prince_n and_o continue_v a_o church_n incorporate_v nay_o it_o be_v necessary_a they_o shall_v cheerful_o take_v up_o the_o cross_n and_o be_v content_a to_o be_v a_o church_n persecute_v when_o they_o can_v no_o long_o enjoy_v the_o secular_a benefit_n of_o incorporation_n without_o yield_v to_o a_o irreligious_a and_o ill_a ministration_n nor_o hold_v on_o minister_a to_o the_o necessary_a service_n of_o soul_n and_o of_o pure_a religion_n without_o incur_v persecution_n for_o then_o all_o churchman_n of_o any_o fidelity_n or_o conscience_n must_v show_v themselves_o minister_n of_o christ_n not_o of_o prince_n and_o guide_n that_o watch_n for_o soul_n not_o for_o benefice_n and_o secular_a accession_n and_o like_o their_o great_a master_n and_o all_o good_a and_o holy_a bishop_n who_o be_v call_v by_o he_o as_o we_o all_o be_v to_o spiritual_a ministery_n under_o whatever_o persecution_n of_o prince_n despise_v all_o state-favor_n and_o preferment_n in_o this_o world_n in_o comparison_n of_o fulfil_v that_o spiritual_a ministry_n and_o most_o sacred_a trust_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o lord_n and_o whereof_o one_o day_n they_o must_v give_v a_o most_o strict_a account_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o very_a ill-grounded_a reason_n which_o the_o aforesaid_a author_n of_o the_o vindication_n of_o their_o majesties-authority_n etc._n etc._n use_n to_o authorize_v the_o deprivation_n of_o suffer_a bishop_n at_o such_o time_n for_o state-matter_n by_o a_o mere_a act_n of_o state_n 17._o think_v it_o well_o prove_v if_o it_o be_v as_o certain_a a●d_n evident_a as_o that_o the_o church_n be_v and_o must_v be_v incorporate_v into_o the_o state_n for_o in_o the_o aforesaid_a case_n for_o the_o service_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o sake_n of_o religion_n and_o of_o soul_n the_o church_n be_v bind_v to_o break_v with_o the_o state_n and_o to_o lay_v aside_o all_o thought_n of_o continue_v incorporate_v and_o submit_v to_o be_v persecute_v it_o be_v then_o call_v to_o bear_v christ_n cross_n for_o its_o steadfastness_n in_o his_o service_n and_o ministration_n not_o to_o seek_v or_o court_v state-favor_n by_o cease_v to_o minister_v what_o be_v good_a or_o consent_v to_o minister_v what_o be_v ill_a in_o compliance_n with_o prince_n and_o if_o instead_o of_o be_v certain_a and_o evident_a it_o must_v it_o be_v certain_a and_o evident_a the_o church_n must_v not_o be_v any_o long_o incorporate_v when_o it_o can_v purchase_v it_o but_o on_o these_o term_n then_o in_o all_o the_o foresay_a case_n there_o be_v a_o end_n of_o all_o argument_n to_o persuade_v acquiescence_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o incorporation_n of_o church_n in_o christian_a kingdom_n but_o though_o this_o principle_n of_o faithful_o exercise_v their_o pure_a spiritual_a minstration_n in_o the_o foresay_a case_n without_o accept_v any_o discharge_n thereof_o from_o mere_a state-deprivations_a exclude_v all_o over-rateing_a of_o civil_a incorporation_n or_o place_v the_o favour_n of_o prince_n above_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o benefice_n and_o preferment_n above_o the_o interest_n of_o religion_n and_o of_o soul_n yet_o do_v it_o at_o the_o same_o time_n allow_v to_o a_o incorporate_a state_n all_o that_o real_o do_v belong_v to_o it_o and_o therefore_o in_o these_o ministration_n after_o deprivation_n by_o a_o rightful_a state_n it_o claim_v nothing_o that_o come_v to_o churchman_n by_o incorporation_n but_o it_o be_v spiritual_a ministration_n christ_n church_n then_o discharge_v without_o the_o encouragement_n of_o state-benefice_n and_o preferment_n without_o claim_v the_o convenience_n of_o the_o establish_a place_n for_o a_o free_a hold_v of_o its_o religious_a assembly_n or_o the_o guard_n and_o assistance_n of_o any_o of_o the_o forementioned_a civil_a law_n jurisdiction_n or_o other_o secular_a mixture_n and_o state_n accession_n for_o the_o strengthen_n and_o furtherance_n of_o its_o exercise_n of_o any_o spiritual_a function_n and_o what_o more_o shall_v they_o look_v at_o in_o this_o state_n of_o incorporation_n than_o to_o see_v that_o as_o they_o do_v not_o let_v fall_v any_o spiritual_a service_n which_o be_v not_o give_v up_o nor_o can_v be_v stop_v thereby_o so_o when_o devest_v thereof_o that_o they_o do_v not_o challenge_v any_o worldly_a benefice_n power_n or_o other_o endowment_n which_o be_v dependent_a thereupon_o and_o this_o be_v not_o to_o make_v the_o claim_v and_o exercise_n of_o ecclesiastical_a power_n by_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n the_o same_o in_o all_o point_n at_o this_o day_n in_o a_o incorporate_a church_n as_o they_o be_v by_o the_o ancient_a canon_n whilst_o the_o church_n be_v separate_v from_o the_o state_n under_o the_o gentile_a persecution_n it_o assert_v they_o the_o same_o as_o to_z minister_a all_o that_o be_v necessary_a in_o religion_n and_o in_o care_n of_o soul_n which_o the_o pastor_n be_v as_o much_o empowerd_v and_o as_o much_o oblige_v to_o look_v to_o under_o incorporation_n as_o before_o it_o and_o to_o be_v the_o same_o also_o in_o other_o point_n give_v up_o and_o accrue_v to_o the_o state_n at_o the_o incorporation_n of_o the_o church_n as_o
thus_o it_o be_v when_o it_o shall_v excommunicate_v any_o for_o adhere_v to_o any_o necessary_a christian_a doctrine_n worship_n or_o practice_n for_o all_o who_o will_v hold_v to_o christ_n must_v neglect_v such_o censure_n and_o though_o any_o church_n or_o synod_n throw_v such_o person_n out_o of_o its_o communion_n they_o be_v joyful_o to_o well_o come_v and_o receive_v they_o into_o they_o for_o when_o our_o 11._o lord_n arthorize_v and_o give_v validity_n to_o church_n censure_n say_v they_o shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n and_o bid_v we_o look_v on_o all_o who_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n as_o heathen_n and_o publican_n he_o limit_n this_o validity_n to_o those_o censure_n which_o pass_v upon_o man_n not_o for_o any_o part_n of_o righteousness_n but_o for_o real_a offence_n if_o thy_o brother_n trespass_n against_o thou_o and_o will_v not_o hear_v thou_o tell_v it_o unto_o the_o church_n so_o that_o some_o real_a offence_n or_o trespass_n must_v still_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o process_n mat._n 18._o 15._o 17._o it_o must_v be_v for_o not_o hear_v the_o church_n when_o it_o call_v we_o to_o his_o truth_n and_o precept_n not_o when_o it_o set_v up_o to_o carry_v we_o from_o they_o for_o there_o if_o it_o use_v censure_n it_o act_n of_o itself_o and_o not_o by_o his_o commission_n it_o open_v or_o shut_v by_o a_o err_v key_n and_o must_v not_o expect_v that_o what_o be_v so_o bind_v or_o loose_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v ratify_v in_o heaven_n by_o such_o perverse_a censure_n the_o church_n only_o deprive_v itself_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o faithful_a christian_n but_o do_v not_o deprive_v they_o of_o communion_n with_o christ_n or_o with_o one_o another_o etc._n the_o unjust_a excommunication_n of_o the_o jewish_a sinhedrim_n when_o they_o cast_v christ_n disciple_n out_o of_o their_o synagogue_n only_o estrange_v or_o cut_v off_o themselves_o say_v photius_n but_o etc._n bring_v those_o disciple_n so_o much_o near_o to_o their_o lord_n and_o master_n and_o so_o now_o say_v he_o when_o the_o imitator_n of_o the_o jew_n excommunicate_v the_o follower_n of_o the_o apostle_n they_o thereby_o only_o 157._o conjoin_v and_o unite_v they_o the_o more_o to_o those_o divine_a apostle_n to_o who_o they_o be_v more_o close_o and_o exact_o knit_v both_o in_o faith_n and_o life_n by_o the_o communion_n of_o suffering_n but_o they_o miserable_o cut_v off_o themselves_o both_o from_o their_o doctrine_n and_o from_o our_o orthodox_n faith_n and_o therefore_o instead_o of_o bemoan_v themselves_o under_o such_o excommunication_n and_o seek_v to_o have_v they_o take_v off_o by_o comply_v with_o the_o church_n our_o bless_a saviour_n fortify_v his_o ●r●●_n follower_n against_o they_o and_o bid_v they_o not_o only_o patient_o to_o rest_v under_o t●em_n but_o triumphant_o to_o re_fw-mi oyce_n therein_o they_o shall_v put_v you_o out_o ●_o the_o 〈◊〉_d ve_n say_v he_o to_o ●●em_v and_o caution_n they_o not_o be_v offend_v thereat_o when_o it_o shall_v happen_v or_o not_o to_o fall_v off_o from_o he_o or_o his_o way_n to_o recover_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o synagogue_n again_o joh._n 16._o 1._o 2._o when_o they_o shall_v separate_v you_o from_o their_o company_n by_o excommunication_n and_o anathema_n and_o shall_v reproach_v you_o and_o cast_v out_o your_o name_n as_o evil_a for_o the_o son_n of_o man_n sake_n rejoice_v you_o in_o that_o day_n and_o leap_v for_o joy_n for_o behold_v great_a be_v your_o reward_n in_o heaven_n for_o in_o the_o like_a manner_n do_v their_o father_n unto_o the_o prophet_n luk._n 6._o 22_o 23._o and_o thus_o the_o holy_a apostle_n and_o faithful_a adherer_n to_o god_n truth_n and_o worship_n and_o good_a christian_a practice_n do_v in_o all_o time_n when_o for_o such_o adherence_n they_o fall_v under_o the_o anathema_n of_o synod_n or_o the_o excommunication_n of_o church_n during_o the_o papal_a or_o any_o other_o former_a or_o late_a persecution_n they_o joyful_o receive_v such_o sentence_n and_o always_o own_v one_o another_o and_o hold_v communion_n in_o adherence_n to_o god_n word_n and_o way_n among_o themselves_o when_o they_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o such_o corrupt_a and_o apostatise_v synod_n or_o church_n and_o it_o be_v the_o same_o when_o it_o shall_v deprive_v or_o discharge_v any_o faithful_a bishop_n and_o minister_n from_o support_v such_o necessary_a doctrine_n worship_n and_o practice_n by_o their_o ministration_n as_o christ_n require_v for_o then_o notwithstanding_o such_o deprivation_n and_o discharge_v by_o church_n and_o synod_n christ_n faithful_a minister_n must_v hold_v on_o minister_a and_o his_o faithful_a people_n must_v hold_v on_o communicate_v and_o adhere_v to_o they_o therein_o thus_o as_o our_o lord_n 23._o note_n their_o father_n have_v separate_v and_o cast_v out_o the_o old_a prophet_n from_o prophesy_v in_o their_o company_n or_o assembly_n who_o still_o go_v on_o preach_v and_o minister_a the_o word_n which_o they_o be_v send_v out_o to_o publish_v and_o thus_o the_o sanhedrim_n that_o great_a synod_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n discharge_v the_o apostle_n from_o minister_a christianity_n or_o preach_v any_o more_o in_o christ_n name_n who_o tell_v they_o they_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n desist_v thereupon_o but_o must_v hold_v on_o their_o ministration_n be_v to_o ovey_n god_n rather_o than_o man_n act._n 4._o 18_o 19_o 20._o thus_o also_o several_a synod_n deprive_v athanasius_n and_o the_o other_o orthodox_n bishop_n who_o be_v the_o stout_a asserter_n and_o maintainer_n of_o the_o divinity_n of_o our_o lord_n against_o the_o arian_n such_o be_v the_o synod_n of_o tyre_n and_o such_o also_o be_v the_o synod_n of_o antioch_n who_o deprivation_n of_o athanasius_n and_o the_o other_o orthodox_n bishop_n be_v a_o blow_v make_v at_o the_o nicene_n faith_n though_o their_o canon_n be_v good_a and_o according_a to_o primitive_a usage_n be_v by_o orthodox_n council_n afterward_o take_v into_o the_o book_n of_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n out_o of_o which_o bin._n several_a of_o they_o be_v repeat_v verbatim_o in_o the_o great_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o be_v there_o among_o the_o canon_n of_o other_o synod_n 1._o take_v in_o to_o be_v canon_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o such_o likewise_o be_v the_o deprivation_n of_o other_o synod_n assemble_v in_o that_o cause_n afterward_o now_o under_o these_o synodical_a deprivation_n the_o great_a business_n of_o those_o suffer_a bishop_n be_v to_o show_v that_o whatever_o other_o immorality_n or_o personal_a crime_n be_v pretend_v against_o they_o as_o several_a be_v most_o impudent_o pretend_v against_o all_o ground_n and_o reason_n yet_o in_o reality_n and_o truth_n their_o deprivation_n be_v for_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o faith_n or_o for_o their_o firmness_n in_o maintain_v the_o divinity_n and_o consubstantiality_n of_o christ_n with_o the_o father_n this_o athanasius_n and_o paulus_n plead_v for_o themselves_o teach_v 〈◊〉_d that_o their_o deposition_n be_v not_o for_o any_o other_o cause_n but_o for_o the_o subversion_n of_o the_o orthodox_n faith_n as_o be_v relate_v by_o 20._o socrates_n and_o 11._o sozomen_n and_o what_o they_o make_v appear_v to_o the_o emperor_n constans_n be_v that_o they_o suffer_v 511._o not_o for_o the_o crime_n or_o ill_a life_n they_o be_v accuse_v of_o as_o the_o sentence_n of_o deposition_n do_v contain_v but_o for_o their_o think_n and_o teach_v different_o from_o the_o synod_n their_o disposer_n about_o the_o faith_n and_o when_o it_o be_v once_o clear_a to_o any_o person_n or_o church_n that_o they_o be_v deprive_v for_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o faith_n they_o be_v not_o hinder_v by_o any_o authority_n of_o external_a judicature_n in_o the_o synod_n their_o deposer_n but_o ready_o receive_v and_o communicate_v with_o they_o as_o christ_n true_a bishop_n still_o in_o those_o place_n for_o notwithstanding_o these_o synodical_a deprivation_n athanasius_n be_v all_o the_o while_o own_a and_o adhere_v to_o by_o the_o faithful_a egyptian_n as_o paulus_n also_o be_v by_o the_o faithful_a constantinopolitanes_n and_o when_o they_o come_v to_o rome_n on_o their_o give_v full_a satisfaction_n in_o this_o point_n julius_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n receive_v they_o to_o communion_n hear_v the_o cause_n of_o each_o 507._o say_v sozomen_n and_o find_v they_o all_o to_o agree_v in_o the_o nicene_n faith_n which_o he_o see_v undermine_v and_o strike_v at_o by_o their_o depriver_n he_o receive_v they_o to_o communion_n as_o be_v of_o the_o same_o belief_n with_o himself_o this_o reception_n of_o athanasius_n and_o other_o who_o stand_v deprive_v by_o the_o synod_n of_o tyre_n and_o antioch_n etc._n etc._n to_o his_o communion_n be_v before_o the_o synod_n of_o rome_n wherein_o the_o oriental_n shall_v have_v justify_v their_o proceed_n have_v acquit_v and_o receive_v they_o for_o before_o the_o synod_n be_v hold_v at_o rome_n in_o
the_o cause_n of_o athanasius_n pope_n julius_n give_v notice_n of_o the_o time_n appoint_v for_o it_o to_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n who_o have_v be_v depose_v athanasius_n at_o antioch_n and_o substitute_v gregory_n in_o his_o place_n write_v to_o they_o to_o send_v some_o of_o their_o number_n to_o clear_v the_o justice_n of_o their_o sentence_n and_o proceed_n in_o that_o cause_n this_o be_v plain_a from_o athanasius_n who_o ●it_n say_v it_o be_v hold_v after_o the_o letter_n send_v by_o eusebius_n and_o after_o both_o the_o eusebian_n and_o he_o himself_o have_v be_v cite_v to_o appear_v at_o it_o and_o also_o from_o pope_n julius_n be_v 739._o letter_n to_o they_o on_o the_o request_n and_o at_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o roman_a synod_n wherein_o he_o mention_n the_o return_n of_o his_o presbyter_n elpidius_n and_o philoxenus_n who_o be_v 816_o send_v with_o the_o former_a letter_n and_o the_o answer_n they_o have_v bring_v he_o from_o eusebius_n and_o the_o orential_n bishop_n but_o before_o this_o first_o letter_n to_o notify_v the_o time_n appoint_v for_o the_o roman_a synod_n to_o the_o orentials_n julius_n on_o plain_a appearance_n that_o their_o suffering_n be_v not_o for_o any_o other_o pretend_a crime_n but_o only_o on_o account_n of_o the_o orthodox_n faith_n have_v embrace_v the_o communion_n of_o athanasius_n and_o the_o other_o depose_v bishop_n for_o sozomen_n 597._o relate_v that_o on_o his_o receive_v they_o to_o communion_n he_o write_v that_o letter_n to_o the_o oriental_n tax_v their_o unjust_a sentence_n and_o attempt_n upon_o the_o nicene_n faith_n and_o call_v they_o to_o the_o synod_n to_o be_v hold_v at_o rome_n there_o to_o justify_v their_o proceed_n against_o they_o and_o in_o the_o letter_n which_o the_o oriental_n send_v back_o to_o he_o which_o he_o receive_v as_o i_o have_v now_o show_v before_o the_o sit_v of_o the_o roman_a synod_n and_o which_o be_v read_v to_o the_o bishop_n therein_o assemble_v they_o 508_o complain_v of_o his_o have_v communicate_v with_o athanasius_n and_o his_o adherent_n which_o they_o say_v be_v a_o reproach_n cast_v on_o their_o synod_n and_o a_o abrogation_n of_o their_o sentence_n so_o that_o his_o disregard_n of_o the_o synodical_a deprivation_n of_o athanasius_n and_o the_o other_o orthodox_n bishop_n depose_v in_o the_o synod_n of_o tyre_n or_o antioch_n be_v not_o on_o account_n of_o their_o have_v be_v regular_o reverse_v by_o any_o superior_a external_n judicature_n but_o it_o be_v as_o have_v be_v of_o no_o force_n and_o effect_n in_o themselves_o because_o pass_v on_o christ_n faithful_a pastor_n for_o their_o fidelity_n and_o firmness_n to_o the_o true_a christian_n faith_n beside_o when_o the_o synod_n at_o rome_n sit_v in_o the_o cause_n of_o athanasius_n and_o the_o other_o orthodox_n bishop_n and_o synodical_o admit_v they_o to_o communion_n i_o do_v not_o see_v how_o in_o the_o regular_a way_n of_o external_n judicature_n this_o can_v take_v off_o the_o deprivation_n by_o the_o forementioned_a synod_n for_o the_o synod_n at_o rome_n be_v inferior_a in_o number_n of_o bishop_n consist_v as_o athanasius_n 818._o say_v only_o of_o about_o fifty_o bishop_n whereas_o the_o synod_n of_o tyre_n beside_o the_o egyptian_n who_o come_v along_o with_o athanasius_n consist_v of_o sixty_o bishop_n meet_v there_o from_o divers_a place_n 28_o say_v socrates_n and_o the_o synod_n of_o antioch_n which_o again_o depose_v he_o and_o the_o other_o orthodox_n bishop_n consist_v of_o ninety_o seven_o as_o sozomen_n 501._o report_n and_o moreover_o the_o synod_n of_o rome_n consist_v of_o bishop_n who_o live_v more_o remote_a and_o further_o off_o and_o be_v subject_n of_o another_o prince_n viz._n constans_n whereas_o the_o synod_n which_o deprive_v they_o consist_v of_o the_o neighbour_a bishop_n some_o of_o they_o comprovincial_o to_o the_o accuse_a party_n and_o be_v subject_n of_o their_o own_o emperor_n viz._n constantius_n who_o censure_n may_v seem_v more_o conclude_v on_o the_o fellow-bishop_n of_o their_o own_o empire_n so_o that_o julius_n and_o his_o fifty_o bishop_n in_o the_o roman_a synod_n can_v not_o reverse_v the_o deposition_n of_o those_o former_a synod_n in_o regular_a way_n of_o outward_a judicature_n but_o yet_o find_v whatever_o other_o thing_n be_v pretend_v that_o in_o reality_n they_o have_v be_v depose_v in_o those_o synod_n for_o their_o firmness_n to_o the_o nicene_n aith_n in_o prejudice_n whereof_o there_o lie_v no_o power_n of_o deprive_v in_o any_o synod_n before_o any_o superior_a or_o more_o general_a council_n have_v reverse_v their_o deposition_n in_o regular_a way_n of_o external_n judicature_n they_o take_v part_n and_o communicate_v with_o athanasius_n and_o the_o other_o deprive_v bishop_n and_o this_o the_o faithful_a egyptian_n both_o clergy_n and_o people_n have_v do_v without_o any_o regard_n to_o the_o deprivation_n of_o those_o synod_n all_o the_o time_n of_o athanasius_n force_a absence_n from_o they_o and_o be_v applaud_v by_o pope_n julius_n for_o the_o same_o for_o in_o his_o 111._o letter_n to_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n after_o the_o synod_n of_o sardica_n on_o the_o restitution_n of_o athanasius_n to_o his_o see_n he_o extol_v they_o for_o their_o firm_a and_o constant_a adherence_n to_o the_o right_a faith_n and_o to_o he_o their_o bishop_n who_o have_v be_v so_o glorious_a a_o confessor_n and_o maintainer_n thereof_o all_o the_o while_o he_o be_v violent_o tear_v from_o they_o and_o another_o obtrude_v on_o their_o church_n in_o his_o room_n and_o like_v to_o this_o have_v be_v the_o practice_n i_o think_v of_o all_o time_n for_o still_o as_o error_n and_o corruption_n in_o doctrine_n worship_n and_o practice_n prevail_v and_o become_v general_a in_o any_o place_n on_o any_o considerable_a opposition_n make_v to_o they_o by_o christ_n faithful_a minister_n to_o silence_v gainsayers_a they_o have_v have_v the_o establishment_n of_o synod_n and_o these_o synod_n have_v anathematise_v the_o truth_n condemn_v and_o depose_v the_o preacher_n and_o excommunicate_v and_o cast_v out_o the_o adherent_n and_o practiser_n thereof_o but_o yet_o the_o preacher_n and_o minister_n of_o god_n worship_n and_o truth_n have_v still_o hold_v on_o their_o ministration_n and_o god_n faithful_a people_n have_v stick_v to_o they_o therein_o and_o under_o all_o the_o deposition_n and_o excommunication_n of_o council_n or_o church_n they_o have_v keep_v communion_n with_o one_o another_o in_o these_o necessary_a truth_n and_o way_n of_o god_n which_o corrupt_a and_o apostate_n council_n have_v anathematise_v or_o else_o under_o that_o power_n of_o error_n which_o have_v so_o often_o tyrannize_v over_o the_o truth_n more_o especial_o in_o the_o arian_n persecution_n and_o in_o the_o several_a step_n and_o advancement_n of_o the_o papal_a corruption_n the_o pure_a worship_n and_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n have_v perish_v and_o all_o face_n of_o a_o true_a and_o unadulterated_a church_n have_v long_o since_o fail_v from_o off_o the_o earth_n this_o i_o say_v in_o case_n of_o deposition_n or_o other_o censure_n for_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o necessary_a truth_n or_o worship_n of_o jesus_n christ._n in_o deprivation_n for_o other_o thing_n or_o on_o pretence_n of_o mere_a personal_a crime_n the_o case_n i_o grant_v may_v be_v otherwise_o for_o in_o they_o though_o the_o sentence_n be_v unjust_a it_o be_v a_o personal_a wrong_n and_o affect_v the_o sufferer_n themselves_o and_o in_o private_a suffering_n it_o be_v reasonable_a to_o bear_v much_o for_o order_n sake_n and_o to_o be_v tie_v up_o to_o way_n of_o order_n for_o redress_v so_o that_o such_o sufferer_n shall_v be_v bind_v to_o rest_v under_o the_o judicial_a injustice_n till_o they_o can_v have_v it_o reverse_v in_o like_a sort_n as_o it_o be_v lay_v on_o viz._n in_o way_n of_o judicature_n or_o by_o regular_a appeal_n and_o according_o in_o all_o deposition_n for_o such_o private_a or_o personal_a crime_n this_o be_v require_v by_o the_o ancient_a canon_n if_o a_o bishop_n presbyter_n or_o deacon_n say_v the_o council_n of_o 419._o carthage_n and_o 347._o sardica_n and_o the_o same_o determination_n sardic_n say_v balsamon_n be_v to_o be_v take_v as_o mean_v of_o layman_n too_o be_v depose_v on_o pretence_n of_o his_o idleness_n and_o neglect_v let_v he_o not_o dare_v say_v they_o to_o go_v on_o or_o to_o assert_v his_o former_a right_n of_o communion_n during_o the_o time_n of_o his_o excommunication_n 32._o till_o his_o cause_n have_v have_v a_o new_a cognizance_n and_o examination_n or_o be_v hear_v over_o again_o and_o if_o before_o such_o re-hearing_a he_o presume_v to_o do_v otherwise_o he_o shall_v be_v judge_v say_v the_o father_n at_o cartharge_n thereby_o to_o have_v give_v sentence_n of_o condemnation_n against_o himself_o but_o in_o deposition_n or_o excommunication_n for_o doctrinal_a truth_n and_o spiritual_a ministration_n there_o be_v not_o only_o a_o wrong_n to_o themselves_o but_o
church_n or_o spiritual_a city_n wherein_o christian_n be_v incorporate_v into_o one_o body_n be_v not_o only_o the_o church_n of_o one_o place_n or_o country_n wherein_o all_o the_o member_n may_v embody_n and_o associate_n under_o the_o same_o governor_n as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n alexandria_n or_o antioch_n but_o the_o collection_n of_o all_o particular_a christian_n societys_n or_o the_o whole_a number_n of_o independent_a church_n exist_v in_o all_o time_n and_o diffuse_v through_o all_o place_n for_o all_o these_o our_o saviour_n have_v ordain_v to_o be_v one_o society_n or_o spiritual_a body_n of_o they_o he_o speak_v or_o of_o all_o that_o do_v or_o shall_v believe_v on_o he_o when_o he_o pray_v to_o his_o father_n that_o they_o all_o may_v be_v one_o joh._n 17._o 11._o 20._o 21._o and_o of_o they_o st_n paul_n speak_v when_o he_o say_v both_o of_o jew_n and_o gentile_n distribute_v into_o so_o many_o distinct_a church_n that_o by_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n they_o be_v all_o reconcile_v to_o god_n in_o one_o body_n eph._n 2._o 16._o and_o when_o he_o say_v of_o baptism_n which_o be_v due_o receive_v in_o any_o church_n make_v a_o man_n free_a of_o all_o other_o christian_a church_n that_o by_o one_o spirit_n we_o be_v all_o baptize_v into_o one_o body_n whether_o we_o be_v jew_n or_o gentile_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 13._o and_o of_o the_o unity_n of_o this_o church_n or_o collection_n of_o all_o believer_n do_v those_o scripture_n speak_v which_o represent_v all_o that_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o all_o that_o be_v in_o earth_n as_o one_o whole_a family_n eph._n 3._o 15._o as_o one_o household_n 1_o tim._n 3._o 15._o and_o gal._n 6._o 10._o or_o as_o one_o city_n heb._n 12._o 22._o whence_o according_o all_o who_o be_v at_o any_o time_n in_o this_o world_n be_v say_v to_o have_v their_o 〈◊〉_d citizenship_n or_o corporation_n in_o heaven_n phil._n 3._o 20._o and_o all_o who_o be_v admit_v into_o christ_n church_n here_o to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d fellow-citizen_n with_o the_o saint_n and_o 〈◊〉_d domestic_n with_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n and_o with_o all_o other_o who_o be_v go_v to_o god_n before_o eph._n 2._o 19_o what_o be_v the_o one_o body_n 2._o say_v st_n chrysostom_n on_o the_o word_n of_o st._n paul_n there_o be_v one_o body_n it_o be_v all_o believer_n of_o every_o place_n say_v he_o both_o those_o who_o now_o be_v and_o who_o former_o have_v be_v and_o who_o hereafter_o shall_v be_v and_o as_o to_o the_o union_n of_o these_o spiritual_a body_n or_o society_n both_o the_o member_n of_o each_o particular_a church_n must_v keep_v unity_n or_o make_v one_o society_n with_o their_o own_o church_n and_o every_o particular_a and_o independent_a church_n with_o its_o member_n must_v keep_v unity_n and_o make_v one_o society_n with_o all_o other_o particular_a and_o independent_a church_n the_o member_n keep_v unity_n with_o their_o own_o church_n by_o due_a dependence_n and_o subjection_n or_o by_o keep_v subject_n and_o dependent_a on_o their_o own_o lawful_a bishop_n and_o one_o particular_a church_n keep_v unity_n with_o all_o other_o independent_a and_o sister_n church_n by_o fraternal_a communion_n or_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n in_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n profess_v in_o the_o creed_n that_o be_v by_o their_o readiness_n to_o unite_n with_o their_o religious_a assembly_n to_o own_o their_o member_n and_o to_o ratify_v their_o church_n act_n as_o if_o they_o be_v their_o own_o or_o have_v be_v speed_v by_o themselves_o and_o this_o way_n of_o fraternal_a communion_n as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o of_o keep_v under_o the_o same_o visible_a governor_n by_o due_a dependence_n and_o subjection_n be_v a_o way_n to_o unite_v they_o not_o only_o as_o a_o sect_n who_o all_o hold_n and_o profess_v the_o same_o doctrine_n and_o opinion_n but_o also_o as_o a_o society_n or_o as_o one_o body_n for_o by_o this_o bond_n of_o fraternal_a communion_n they_o stand_v oblige_v not_o only_o to_o unity_n of_o doctrine_n as_o man_n of_o the_o same_o sect_n but_o to_o unity_n as_o of_o internal_a so_o of_o external_a society_n and_o incorporation_n as_o fellow_n citizen_n for_o such_o be_v the_o obligation_n of_o receive_v mutual_o each_o other_o member_n as_o their_o own_o free_a denizen_n of_o admit_v of_o their_o baptismal_a claim_n and_o church_n privilege_n of_o ratify_v of_o their_o church-act_n and_o censure_n of_o associate_a with_o their_o church_n service_n and_o assembly_n and_o of_o stand_v together_o as_o one_o body_n and_o brotherhood_n for_o the_o same_o common_a tenet_n and_o religious_a interest_n as_o if_o they_o be_v incorporate_v under_o the_o same_o external_n head_n or_o be_v the_o member_n of_o the_o same_o particular_a church_n and_o this_o be_v to_o unite_v they_o in_o the_o great_a thing_n of_o society_n particular_o of_o a_o spiritual_a society_n which_o lie_v mighty_o in_o communion_n in_o spiritual_a act_n and_o office_n and_o according_o unite_n in_o the_o same_o sacrament_n which_o be_v the_o high_a act_n of_o church_n communion_n be_v set_v out_o for_o a_o way_n of_o unite_n all_o in_o one_o body_n or_o corporation_n we_o be_v many_o be_v one_o body_n by_o be_v all_o partaker_n of_o that_o one_o bread_n 1_o cor._n 10._o 17._o and_o we_o be_v all_o baptize_v into_o one_o body_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 13._o so_o that_o all_o christian_a church_n who_o under_o 15_o one_o common_a father_n as_o 19_o domestic_n or_o under_o 5._o one_o lord_n and_o king_n as_o 19_o fellow-citizen_n be_v incorporate_v upon_o one_o charter_n or_o new-covenant_n to_o live_v by_o the_o same_o law_n and_o out_o of_o the_o 4._o same_o hope_n and_o in_o enjoyment_n of_o the_o same_o church-right_n and_o privilege_n and_o have_v one_o common_a form_n of_o incorporation_n to_o naturalize_v or_o enfranchise_v they_o thereinto_o viz._n 5._o one_o baptism_n be_v to_o transact_v as_o one_o society_n by_o keep_v up_o one_o fraternal_a communion_n among_o themselves_o now_o both_o this_o union_n of_o subjection_n towards_o their_o own_o church_n and_o its_o lawful_a head_n and_o of_o fraternal_a communion_n towards_o all_o other_o equal_a and_o independent_a church_n all_o good_a christian_n be_v bind_v to_o keep_v up_o unless_o some_o obstacle_n happen_v in_o either_o which_o be_v of_o force_n to_o put_v a_o bar_n thereto_o or_o give_v discharge_v thereof_o and_o such_o obstacle_n either_o in_o our_o own_o bishop_n or_o in_o other_o equal_a and_o independent_a church_n be_v heresy_n when_o once_o open_o profess_v by_o they_o or_o their_o fix_v unlawful_a term_n of_o communion_n put_v sinful_a thing_n into_o their_o sacred_a office_n or_o not_o allow_v any_o to_o communicate_v with_o they_o without_o believe_v or_o profess_v some_o false_a doctrine_n or_o partake_v with_o they_o in_o some_o evil_a worship_n or_o thing_n or_o tyrannical_a usupation_n on_o their_o brethren_n liberty_n not_o admit_v other_o church_n to_o their_o communion_n unless_o they_o will_v give_v up_o their_o own_o right_n and_o freedom_n and_o become_v their_o subject_n when_o such_o exception_n lie_v against_o any_o bishop_n or_o against_o any_o church_n they_o have_v lose_v their_o claim_n of_o union_n but_o all_o church-member_n be_v bind_v i_o conceive_v by_o all_o the_o numerous_a and_o earnest_a command_n of_o keep_v unity_n to_o continue_v subject_a to_o their_o lawful_a bishop_n as_o all_o church_n be_v by_o the_o same_o to_o keep_v up_o communion_n with_o other_o church_n if_o they_o can_v produce_v any_o such_o just_a obstacle_n in_o bar_n thereof_o now_o schism_n be_v a_o sinful_a breach_n of_o this_o union_n of_o church_n society_n either_o in_o the_o member_n of_o any_o particular_a church_n when_o they_o unjust_o break_v off_o their_o subjection_n and_o dependence_n upon_o their_o own_o church_n or_o in_o any_o particular_a church_n when_o they_o undue_o break_v off_o fraternal_a communion_n with_o other_o church_n deny_v to_o assemble_v with_o they_o or_o communicate_v with_o such_o as_o stand_v excommunicate_v by_o or_o have_v make_v a_o schism_n from_o they_o first_o one_o great_a way_n of_o schism_n be_v in_o respect_n of_o particular_a member_n when_o against_o the_o gospel_n duty_n and_o command_n of_o unity_n they_o undue_o throw_v off_o their_o subjection_n and_o dependence_n upon_o their_o own_o bishop_n and_o break_v off_o from_o the_o unity_n of_o their_o own_o church_n one_o way_n of_o unite_v society_n or_o body_n of_o man_n be_v by_o unite_v they_o under_o the_o same_o head_n they_o be_v all_o one_o body_n and_o member_n one_o of_o another_o as_o keep_v under_o and_o be_v unite_v to_o the_o same_o head_n and_o governor_n thus_o of_o the_o association_n of_o man_n and_o wife_n which_o be_v the_o original_a society_n and_o make_v a_o family_n which_o be_v the_o ground_n work_n of_o all_o other_o society_n it_o be_v say_v that_o they_o two_o
and_o private_a claim_n and_o master_v all_o private_a resentment_n as_o mortify_v and_o most_o public_a spirit_a man_n they_o can_v make_v a_o end_n thereof_o by_o let_v fall_v their_o own_o pretension_n and_o why_o will_v many_o good_a mind_n and_o sincere_a lover_n of_o peace_n say_v shall_v they_o not_o do_v this_o for_o the_o love_n of_o peace_n and_o for_o religion_n sake_n and_o the_o church_n their_o adversary_n indeed_o can_v not_o have_v the_o face_n to_o ask_v it_o and_o other_o who_o may_v move_v better_o therein_o will_v be_v modest_a in_o press_v liberality_n on_o loser_n and_o not_o go_v too_o far_o in_o urge_v they_o who_o have_v suffer_v so_o much_o already_o from_o the_o invader_n as_o if_o they_o have_v not_o take_v enough_o from_o they_o to_o fall_v upon_o themselves_o and_o throw_v they_o what_o remain_v yet_o they_o think_v it_o will_v be_v a_o noble_a pitch_n in_o virtue_n full_a of_o glory_n and_o goodness_n if_o of_o themselves_o they_o will_v prefer_v publick-weal_n before_o private_a passion_n and_o advantage_n and_o be_v full_a of_o care_n for_o other_o when_o that_o needs_o to_o be_v show_v in_o care_v least_o for_o themselves_o which_o heavenly-mindedness_a and_o public-spiritedness_a and_o mortification_n to_o private_a interest_n god_n and_o the_o church_n they_o conceive_v must_v needs_o take_v most_o kind_o at_o their_o hand_n but_o as_o to_o this_o the_o suffer_a bishop_n can_v not_o take_v this_o way_n of_o cure_n by_o give_v up_o their_o claim_n where_o they_o be_v bind_v in_o duty_n to_o insist_v on_o they_o and_o that_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v as_o i_o have_v already_o show_v at_o large_a in_o the_o forementioned_a case_n by_o their_o quit_n there_o they_o will_v surrender_v the_o soul_n of_o their_o charge_n to_o become_v a_o prey_n to_o wolf_n and_o seducer_n and_o to_o be_v train_v up_o in_o wicked_a and_o corrupt_a doctrine_n prayer_n and_o practice_n and_o this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v true_a to_o their_o pastoral_n trust_n it_o be_v not_o faithful_o to_o discharge_v their_o cure_n of_o soul_n but_o perfidious_o to_o throw_v it_o off_o so_o that_o be_v they_o never_o so_o mortify_v and_o negligent_a of_o themselves_o and_o zealous_o studious_a of_o unity_n and_o the_o church_n peace_n yet_o in_o fidelity_n to_o christ_n and_o to_o the_o people_n who_o he_o have_v entrust_v to_o their_o charge_n they_o must_v hold_v on_o their_o spiritual_a relation_n i_o conceive_v and_o diligent_o discharge_v it_o the_o best_a they_o can_v at_o such_o time_n and_o not_o desert_n but_o stick_v to_o the_o church_n over_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v they_o overseer_n beside_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o spiritual_a ministration_n be_v loud_o call_v for_o in_o such_o case_n and_o bind_v on_o they_o and_o the_o suffer_a clergy_n their_o brethren_n by_o all_o the_o power_n and_o character_n of_o the_o ministerial_a office_n as_o i_o think_v may_v full_o appear_v from_o what_o i_o have_v say_v on_o that_o point_n before_o and_o not_o only_o the_o continuance_n of_o their_o former_a relation_n as_o the_o true_a bishop_n still_o of_o those_o place_n but_o this_o very_a exercise_n must_v in_o consequence_n keep_v up_o a_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n at_o such_o time_n for_o this_o exercise_n of_o their_o ministration_n must_v be_v in_o separate_a body_n the_o state_n incorporate_v and_o espouse_v the_o anti-bishop_n and_o their_o adherent_n will_v give_v they_o the_o public_a church_n and_o deprive_v and_o persecute_v the_o other_o and_o their_o follower_n will_v also_o be_v sure_a to_o keep_v they_o out_o thereof_o so_o their_o ministration_n if_o they_o go_v on_o minister_a at_o all_o as_o it_o be_v plain_a they_o ought_v must_v be_v in_o separate_a place_n and_o assembly_n yea_o and_o by_o different_a way_n of_o exercise_n the_o spiritual_a administration_n of_o one_o be_v pure_o spiritual_a in_o the_o way_n of_o a_o destitute_a and_o persecute_v but_o those_o of_o the_o other_o be_v mix_v in_o the_o way_n of_o a_o incorporate_a and_o endow_v church_n and_o therefore_o in_o all_o the_o forementioned_a case_n where_o the_o suffer_a bishop_n be_v still_o bind_v for_o the_o interest_n of_o religion_n and_o of_o soul_n to_o insist_v upon_o their_o episcopal_a claim_n and_o their_o relation_n to_o their_o church_n and_o with_o their_o brethren_n of_o the_o other_o clergy_n still_o to_o go_v on_o in_o a_o faithful_a discharge_n of_o their_o ministration_n this_o way_n of_o cure_n can_v have_v no_o place_n but_o as_o the_o anti-bishop_n by_o break_v off_o from_o they_o and_o from_o those_o christian_a principle_n and_o practice_n whereto_o they_o stand_v firm_a have_v make_v the_o schism_n so_o they_o alone_o by_o a_o penitential_a return_n be_v capable_a to_o mend_v it_o it_o not_o admit_v of_o remedy_n in_o those_o case_n and_o under_o such_o state_n of_o thing_n from_o any_o other_o hand_n and_o this_o may_v be_v sufficient_a as_o to_o the_o true_a and_o suffer_a bishop_n and_o show_v how_o little_a the_o argument_n from_o the_o desirableness_n and_o duty_n of_o union_n will_v affect_v they_o in_o those_o case_n when_o the_o church_n be_v rend_v by_o such_o a_o deplorable_a schism_n as_o the_o precedent_a discourse_n show_v who_o make_v it_o so_o this_o i_o think_v be_v enough_o to_o show_v who_o can_v mend_v it_o and_o to_o who_o alone_o the_o lover_n of_o peace_n and_o unity_n be_v to_o apply_v themselves_o for_o remedy_n at_o such_o time_n chap._n ii_o of_o the_o schism_n of_o particular_a church_n from_o other_o sister-churche_n by_o their_o reject_v of_o fraternal_a communion_n therewith_o beside_o this_o first_o way_n of_o schism_n viz._n of_o particular_a member_n break_v off_o unjust_o from_o the_o unity_n of_o their_o own_o church_n by_o throw_v off_o their_o due_a subordination_n and_o subjection_n to_o their_o own_o bishop_n there_o be_v a_o second_o as_o i_o observe_v above_o viz._n of_o particular_a church_n break_v off_o unjust_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o other_o sister-churche_n and_o this_o be_v by_o reject_v fraternal_a communion_n with_o they_o deny_v to_o worship_n god_n in_o their_o assembly_n or_o to_o admit_v their_o member_n to_o worship_n in_o we_o or_o communicate_v with_o those_o who_o stand_v excommunicate_v by_o they_o or_o have_v make_v a_o schism_n from_o they_o our_o lord_n be_v not_o only_o for_o have_v the_o christian_n of_o every_o place_n of_o country_n to_o keep_v unity_n with_o their_o own_o particular_a church_n but_o also_o as_o i_o note_v before_o for_o have_v all_o particular_a church_n to_o keep_v up_o the_o unity_n of_o one_o body_n among_o themselves_o all_o his_o sheep_n he_o have_v gather_v into_o one_o fl●ck_n joh._n 10._o 16._o all_o the_o assembly_n both_o of_o jew_n and_o gentile_n he_o have_v reconcile_v to_o god_n in_o one_o body_n eph._n 2._o 14_o 16._o calling_n all_o his_o follower_n to_o profess_v christianity_n in_o one_o body_n as_o st._n paul_n say_v col._n 3._o 15._o according_o baptism_n which_o make_v they_o all_o christian_n list_n or_o enroll_v they_o all_o in_o one_o corporation_n we_o be_v all_o baptise_a into_o one_o body_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 13._o and_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n which_o be_v the_o other_o great_a sacrament_n and_o solemn_a undertake_n of_o christianity_n confederate_n they_o into_o one_o spiritual_a corporation_n we_o be_v all_o make_v in_o that_o to_o drink_v into_o one_o spirit_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 13._o and_o though_o many_o be_v one_o body_n as_o partake_v therein_o of_o one_o bread_n 1_o cor._n 10._o 16_o 17._o this_o union_n of_o all_o christian_n and_o christian_a congregation_n into_o one_o society_n under_o jesus_n christ_n make_v that_o body_n the_o church_n whereof_o he_o be_v the_o head_n col._n 1._o 18._o which_o the_o scripture_n sometime_o express_v by_o one_o temple_n eph._n 2._o 21._o or_o spiritual_a house_n 1_o pet._n 2._o 5._o or_o one_o family_n and_o household_n eph._n 2._o 19_o etc._n etc._n 3._o 15._o as_o i_o observe_v above_o and_o which_o be_v that_o one_o holy_a catholic_n church_n betwixt_o all_o the_o part_n whereof_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n be_v to_o be_v maintain_v as_o all_o christian_n profess_v in_o the_o creed_n this_o union_n of_o all_o particular_a church_n as_o one_o body_n under_o himself_o our_o lord_n have_v appoint_v to_o be_v keep_v up_o by_o all_o the_o member_n thereof_o as_o occasion_n be_v but_o chief_o by_o the_o union_n and_o accord_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n who_o be_v the_o respective_a head_n of_o those_o particular_a church_n this_o whole_a church_n be_v make_v one_o body_n by_o one_o spirit_n eph._n 4._o 4._o so_o the_o unity_n thereof_o be_v call_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n v_o 3._o and_o one_o great_a mean_n of_o the_o spirit_n keep_v up_o this_o unity_n be_v by_o the_o ministration_n of_o pastor_n and_o
teacher_n which_o he_o give_v as_o gift_n for_o the_o edify_a or_o compact_v and_o build_v up_o all_o christian_n into_o this_o body_n of_o christ_n v_o 8._o 11_o 12._o to_o these_o pastor_n the_o spirit_n have_v give_v different_a office_n rom._n 12._o 4._o one_o have_v the_o office_n of_o minister_a another_o of_o teach_v another_o of_o rule_v v_o 6_o 7_o 8._o or_o different_a administration_n 1_o cor._n 12_o 5._o set_v some_o in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o station_n of_o apostle_n some_o of_o teacher_n some_o of_o government_n v_o 28._o place_v some_o in_o high_a some_o in_o low_a station_n according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o that_o grace_n or_o office_n the_o word_n grace_n be_v often_o 8._o use_v to_o express_v ministerial_a power_n which_o he_o see_v fit_a to_o commit_v to_o they_o eph._n 4._o 7._o 11._o but_o all_o those_o different_a office_n be_v set_v for_o keep_v all_o christian_n in_o one_o body_n rom._n 12._o 4._o 5._o and_o all_o the_o diversity_n of_o ministries_n be_v to_o continue_v they_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o cement_v the_o member_n who_o be_v many_o into_o one_o body_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 27_o 28._o &_o v_o 12._o 20._o and_o all_o the_o variety_n of_o gift_n i._n e._n of_o office_n v_o 11._o or_o distribution_n of_o high_a or_o low_a station_n be_v for_o edify_v or_o lay_v together_o the_o member_n into_o this_o body_n and_o for_o preserve_v the_o unity_n thereof_o eph._n 4._o 4_o 8_o 12._o the_o head_n of_o this_o body_n be_v jesus_n christ_n himself_o and_o from_o christ_n the_o head_n all_o the_o body_n be_v knit_v together_o say_v st._n paul_n by_o those_o joint_n and_o band_n which_o minister_v neurishment_n i._n e._n by_o the_o pastor_n who_o be_v set_v to_o feed_v it_o col._n 2._o 19_o from_o christ_n the_o head_n say_v he_o again_o the_o whole_a body_n be_v fit_o join_v and_o compact_v together_o by_o those_o joint_n which_o make_v supply_n according_a to_o their_o measure_n or_o according_a to_o their_o several_a station_n in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n eph._n 4._o 15_o 16._o and_o on_o account_n of_o this_o use_n of_o their_o unite_n all_o christian_n under_o christ_n the_o head_n into_o this_o one_o body_n or_o all_o the_o several_a society_n of_o christian_n into_o one_o church_n when_o this_o one_o church_n be_v compare_v to_o a_o natural_a body_n they_o be_v represent_v as_o the_o joint_n and_o as_o the_o band_n or_o ligament_n which_o unite_v and_o compact_v the_o member_n as_o they_o be_v by_o st._n paul_n in_o these_o place_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v in_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n who_o place_v the_o unity_n of_o all_o church_n in_o the_o unity_n and_o accord_n of_o all_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o ox._n the_o catholic_n church_n which_o be_v one_o say_v st._n cyprian_n be_v cement_v or_o couple_v together_o by_o the_o glue_n or_o joint_a accord_n of_o its_o bishop_n adhere_v mutual_o to_o one_o another_o 119._o all_o faithful_a people_n be_v join_v together_o into_o the_o solid_a unity_n of_o one_o body_n by_o the_o glue_n of_o this_o concord_n and_o to_o 112._o fall_v from_o this_o concord_n and_o separate_v from_o the_o college_n of_o bishop_n be_v to_o separate_v from_o the_o bond_n of_o the_o church_n as_o he_o elsewhere_o say_v to_o keep_v up_o this_o unity_n in_o the_o whole_a church_n they_o believe_v all_o bishop_n strict_o oblige_v to_o keep_v unity_n among_o themselves_o we_o ox._n bishop_n who_o preside_v in_o the_o church_n aught_o above_o all_o man_n to_o keep_v firm_o unite_v that_o we_o may_v maintain_v the_o episcopate_n itself_o one_o and_o undivided_a they_o look_v upon_o the_o bishop_n of_o all_o the_o several_a independent_a church_n to_o be_v as_o so_o many_o member_n of_o one_o great_a fraternity_n or_o college_n albaspin_n optatus_n call_v they_o the_o college_n of_o bishop_n and_o before_o he_o st._n cyprian_n style_v they_o ox._n the_o college_n and_o corporation_n of_o priest_n and_o call_v all_o other_o bishop_n his_o colleague_n particular_a bishopric_n be_v all_o member_n one_o of_o another_o and_o 112._o all_o together_o as_o he_o say_v be_v to_o make_v but_o one_o great_a episcopate_n and_o among_o this_o multitude_n of_o bishop_n 83._o as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o church_n so_o there_o be_v but_o one_o chair_n and_o bin._n as_o three_o person_n in_o the_o sacred_a trinity_n make_v up_o but_o one_o god_n wherein_o the_o power_n of_o all_o three_o be_v one_o and_o undivided_a so_o do_v all_o the_o great_a diversity_n of_o prelate_n make_v up_o but_o one_o priesthood_n say_v symmachus_n now_o this_o unity_n the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n keep_v up_o among_o several_a church_n not_o by_o the_o subjection_n of_o all_o other_o bishop_n to_o some_o one_o or_o more_o set_v up_o above_o all_o the_o rest_n particular_o not_o by_o the_o paramount_n authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v neither_o to_o be_v find_v in_o scripture_n nor_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o account_n thereof_o nor_o to_o the_o belief_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n nor_o to_o the_o universal_a diffusedness_n design_v for_o christ_n church_n under_o all_o the_o division_n of_o kingdom_n and_o interruption_n of_o secular_a accord_n and_o correspondence_n here_o on_o earth_n but_o by_o maintain_v fraternal_a concord_n and_o communion_n among_o themselves_o they_o cement_n into_o one_o episcopate_n concordi_fw-la m●merositate_fw-la by_o their_o concord_n under_o this_o numerosity_n as_o we_o be_v 112._o tell_v by_o st._n cyprian_n 178._o they_o be_v bind_v or_o couple_v into_o one_o body_n by_o the_o glue_n of_o mutual_a concord_n as_o he_o say_v again_o which_o ecclesiastical_a concord_n and_o fraternal_a communion_n lie_v in_o own_v each_o other_o and_o all_o the_o christian_n of_o their_o several_a church_n as_o brethren_n and_o member_n and_o in_o ratify_v the_o great_a act_n of_o society_n pass_v among_o they_o as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v pass_v among_o themselves_o and_o in_o have_v this_o communion_n not_o arbitrary_a and_o discretionary_a which_o may_v be_v fix_v at_o will_n upon_o their_o own_o term_n and_o either_o keep_v up_o or_o reject_v as_o they_o please_v but_o a_o communion_n keep_v on_o out_o of_o bind_a duty_n and_o by_o rule_n be_v to_o give_v account_n to_o christ_n the_o chief_a bishop_n for_o the_o breach_n thereof_o to_o this_o it_o be_v requisite_a that_o they_o profess_v the_o same_o true_a faith_n and_o christian_a worship_n this_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o all_o other_o communion_n among_o they_o the_o one_o body_n be_v make_v up_o of_o those_o who_o hold_v to_o the_o one_o faith_n eph._n 4._o 4._o and_o the_o communion_n in_o this_o body_n be_v require_v between_o those_o who_o communicate_v in_o this_o one_o faith_n and_o worship_n as_o shall_v be_v show_v more_o full_o 4._o afterward_o and_o among_o all_o orthodox_n bishop_n and_o church_n who_o profess_v the_o true_a christian_a faith_n and_o worship_n the_o rule_n of_o communion_n and_o correspondence_n require_v by_o christ_n for_o keep_v up_o this_o unity_n of_o his_o body_n be_v such_o as_o these_o 1._o that_o all_o orthodox_n bishop_n and_o church_n receive_v each_o other_o member_n as_o if_o they_o be_v their_o own_o member_n all_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n church_n be_v fellow-citizen_n or_o enfranchise_v denizen_n wheresoever_o they_o come_v and_o upon_o any_o new_a change_n of_o place_n or_o christian_a country_n have_v no_o need_n of_o a_o new_a naturalisation_n they_o ought_v to_o find_v a_o home_n in_o all_o church_n and_o may_v claim_v their_o baptismal_a privilege_n or_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o christian_a coporation_n or_o society_n and_o can_v not_o just_o be_v repulse_v or_o deny_v the_o same_o as_o be_v free_a of_o the_o whole_a body_n for_o baptism_n which_o make_v they_o member_n by_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n incorporate_v they_o all_o not_o only_o into_o those_o several_a church_n or_o congregation_n where_o they_o receive_v it_o but_o into_o the_o whole_a body_n or_o fraternity_n we_o be_v all_o baptize_v whether_o we_o be_v jew_n or_o gentile_n into_o one_o body_n say_v st._n paul_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 13._o and_o according_o no_o church_n must_v exclude_v they_o as_o 19_o strangers_z or_o foreigner_n but_o own_o and_o receive_v they_o as_o fellow-citizen_n as_o 27._o member_n as_o 19_o domestic_n as_o 10._o brethren_n and_o of_o the_o same_o 15._o family_n with_o themselves_o and_o this_o be_v necessary_a to_o maintain_v that_o brotherhood_n which_o christ_n have_v constitute_v among_o all_o his_o member_n every_o christian_a be_v brother_n to_o another_o so_o that_o brother_n be_v usual_o 6._o put_v to_o signify_v a_o christian_a in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o must_v also_o own_v and_o receive_v their_o order_n when_o they_o have_v be_v lawful_o call_v
necessary_a warning_n nor_o faithful_a minister_n let_v fall_v their_o ministration_n in_o the_o foresay_a case_n on_o pretence_n of_o preserve_a unity_n or_o prevent_v schism_n in_o the_o church_n 2._o second_o it_o be_v another_o just_a ground_n to_o break_v off_o from_o they_o if_o they_o make_v unrighteous_a usurpation_n and_o encroachment_n the_o term_n and_o condition_n of_o their_o communion_n both_o bishop_n and_o church_n may_v turn_v tyrannical_a and_o arrogant_a usurper_n upon_o their_o brethren_n liberty_n not_o admit_v their_o own_o member_n to_o their_o communion_n without_o acknowledge_v and_o submit_v to_o their_o unjust_o and_o illegal_o assume_v power_n nor_o other_o church_n unless_o they_o will_v give_v up_o their_o own_o right_n and_o freedom_n and_o become_v their_o subject_n and_o when_o they_o will_v allow_v communion_n to_o none_o unless_o they_o be_v content_a to_o purchase_v it_o at_o such_o rate_n good_a christian_n may_v pass_v they_o by_o and_o unite_v themselves_o to_o other_o church_n where_o they_o will_v be_v more_o just_o and_o fair_o deal_v with_o the_o communion_n of_o christian_n be_v a_o commwion_n of_o brethren_n upon_o brotherly_a term_n not_o of_o captive_n who_o must_v submit_v to_o any_o term_n or_o bear_v what_o hardship_n and_o encroachment_n be_v put_v upon_o they_o by_o their_o conqueror_n they_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o purchase_v unity_n by_o enslave_v of_o themselves_o or_o any_o brethren_n communion_n by_o receive_v their_o yoke_n and_o give_v up_o their_o own_o right_n and_o liberty_n as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n demand_v all_o other_o church_n both_o of_o the_o east_n and_o west_n shall_v do_v to_o purchase_v she_o and_o thus_o st._n paul_n declare_v he_o will_v not_o give_v up_o their_o liberty_n when_o false_a brethren_n turn_v invader_n thereof_o viz._n the_o judaizer_n in_o their_o press_v the_o circumcision_n of_o titus_n to_o who_o he_o give_v place_n by_o subjection_n no_o not_o for_o a_o hour_n when_o they_o seek_v to_o bring_v they_o into_o bondage_n gal._n 2._o 4_o 5._o chap._n iv._o heresy_n a_o just_a ground_n to_o break_v off_o communion_n the_o last_o ground_n which_o i_o shall_v mention_v of_o break_v off_o or_o of_o be_v set_v loose_a from_o the_o communion_n either_o of_o bishop_n or_o church_n be_v though_o none_o of_o the_o foresay_a obstacle_n can_v be_v plead_v against_o the_o term_n of_o their_o communion_n if_o yet_o 3._o three_o heresy_n can_v be_v just_o object_v to_o their_o person_n and_o doctrine_n church_n member_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o keep_v dependent_a on_o the_o person_n of_o their_o bishop_n nor_o one_o church_n to_o keep_v communion_n with_o other_o church_n if_o once_o they_o defect_n from_o the_o true_a worship_n and_o doctrine_n of_o christ._n this_o worship_n and_o doctrine_n be_v the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o christian_a society_n and_o unity_n the_o church_n be_v a_o body_n of_o man_n associate_v for_o they_o and_o must_v be_v one_o society_n by_o keep_v unite_v under_o their_o bishop_n or_o associate_v with_o other_o church_n in_o they_o they_o must_v keep_v one_o in_o stand_v together_o upon_o this_o bottom_n not_o in_o go_v off_o or_o depart_v from_o it_o for_o clear_v these_o matter_n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o our_o saviour_n first_o end_n in_o come_v into_o the_o world_n be_v to_o publish_v a_o religion_n i_o be_o come_v a_o light_n into_o the_o world_n say_v he_o of_o himself_o jo._n 12._o 46._o i_o must_v 13._o preach_v the_o gospel_n for_o therefore_o be_o i_o send_v luk._n 4._o 43._o on_o this_o account_n he_o call_v himself_o the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n joh._n 14._o 6._o and_o tell_v pilate_n that_o for_o this_o end_n be_v he_o bear_v and_o for_o this_o cause_n come_v he_o into_o the_o world_n that_o he_o shall_v bear_v witness_n unto_o the_o truth_n joh._n 18._o 37._o and_o this_o truth_n or_o religion_n lie_v in_o his_o doctrine_n of_o worship_n faith_n and_o practice_n or_o in_o his_o teach_v all_o his_o disciple_n what_o way_n they_o be_v to_o worship_n god_n what_o they_o be_v to_o believe_v concern_v he_o or_o other_o thing_n which_o concern_v their_o eternal_a salvation_n and_o what_o they_o be_v to_o do_v for_o he_o now_o this_o doctrine_n be_v like_a to_o be_v most_o advantageous_o profess_v and_o this_o worship_n to_o be_v best_a pay_v if_o it_o be_v not_o leave_v to_o single_a person_n or_o to_o scatter_a family_n to_o do_v it_o separately_z by_o themselves_o but_o have_v its_o several_a professor_n incorporate_v into_o one_o regular_a society_n and_o unite_a body_n for_o the_o joint_a profession_n and_o performance_n thereof_o such_o regular_a society_n will_v hold_v it_o out_o by_o more_o orderly_a and_o effectual_a ministration_n and_o keep_v man_n to_o it_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o discipline_n and_o be_v a_o common_a help_n and_o spur_n to_o excite_v and_o aid_v each_o other_o mutual_o and_o carry_v they_o on_o and_o a_o cover_n and_o shelter_n to_o back_o &_o embolden_v they_o therein_o a_o regular_a society_n or_o church_n incorporate_v for_o the_o profession_n thereof_o st._n paul_n 15._o say_v be_v a_o pillar_n and_o ground_n or_o 〈◊〉_d stay_v to_o publish_v and_o support_v it_o according_o when_o religion_n be_v leave_v to_o be_v bear_v out_o by_o small_a society_n and_o sometime_o even_o by_o single_a family_n as_o in_o the_o patriarchical_a age_n we_o see_v it_o be_v sometime_o almost_o lose_v and_o always_o make_v a_o very_a small_a progress_n but_o when_o a_o whole_a nation_n be_v incorporate_v into_o one_o church_n for_o the_o profession_n and_o payment_n of_o it_o as_o it_o be_v among_o the_o jew_n it_o spread_v further_o in_o power_n and_o influence_n and_o gain_v more_o proselyte_n and_o last_o when_o all_o nation_n as_o fast_o as_o they_o turn_v christian_n be_v embody_v in_o one_o society_n for_o the_o same_o intent_n as_o 15._o a_o light_n set_v upon_o a_o candlestiks_n or_o as_o a_o 14._o city_n place_v on_o a_o hill_n it_o desplay_v its_o force_n far_o and_o near_o and_o strengthen_v incomparable_o more_o heart_n in_o it_o and_o draw_v more_o eye_n after_o it_o and_o therefore_o our_o lord_n intend_v and_o order_v in_o the_o next_o place_n that_o all_o who_o embrace_v this_o religion_n shall_v incorporate_v or_o unite_v together_o in_o one_o church_n or_o society_n for_o the_o profession_n of_o it_o according_o he_o have_v make_v baptism_n wherein_o every_o professor_n take_v upon_o he_o this_o religion_n to_o incorporate_v he_o or_o enter_v he_o a_o member_n of_o this_o church_n baptism_n as_o st._n 13._o paul_n note_n unite_v we_o all_o in_o one_o body_n and_o 28._o as_o many_o as_o be_v baptize_v into_o christ_n be_v all_o one_o in_o christ_n jesus_n and_o require_v of_o every_o professor_n of_o this_o religion_n that_o he_o keep_v on_o profess_v it_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o this_o church_n and_o that_o all_o of_o his_o religion_n pay_v this_o worship_n and_o profess_v this_o doctrine_n not_o separately_z by_o themselves_o but_o social_o in_o joint_a communion_n with_o other_o so_o that_o all_o who_o come_v to_o embrace_v the_o christian_a religion_n must_v perform_v the_o worship_n and_o profession_n thereof_o in_o christian_a society_n or_o in_o the_o unity_n and_o communion_n of_o christ_n holy_a catholic_n church_n but_o we_o be_v first_o to_o be_v all_o of_o this_o religion_n and_o then_o to_o profess_v and_o perform_v it_o in_o the_o unity_n and_o communion_n of_o this_o church_n the_o doctrine_n and_o worship_n i_o say_v which_o make_v we_o christian_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o that_o society_n and_o unity_n which_o be_v to_o be_v uphold_v in_o the_o christian_a church_n thus_o on_o peter_n confession_n our_o lord_n declare_v he_o will_v build_v his_o church_n mat._n 16._o 16_o 18._o and_o the_o uniteing_n of_o christian_n into_o one_o temple_n st._n paul_n say_v be_v by_o their_o be_v build_v on_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n i._n e._n on_o their_o doctrine_n about_o worship_n faith_n and_o practice_n eph._n 2._o 20._o 21._o and_o when_o our_o saviour_n pray_v so_o earnest_o lie_v for_o the_o unity_n of_o his_o church_n at_o what_o time_n he_o be_v about_o to_o leave_v it_o he_o limit_n it_o to_o this_o that_o they_o may_v be_v keep_v one_o 〈◊〉_d in_o god_n name_n joh._n 17._o 11_o and_o call_v the_o gather_v or_o unite_v together_o of_o christian_n in_o congregation_n wherein_o he_o will_v be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o their_o gather_v together_o in_o his_o name_n mat._n 18._o 20._o in_o his_o name_n that_o be_v in_o his_o doctrine_n or_o profession_n of_o faith_n and_o worship_n name_v with_o relation_n to_o master_n and_o teacher_n be_v usual_o put_v for_o doctrine_n as_o to_o bear_v my_o name_n before_o the_o gentile_n be_v to_o bear_v my_o doctrine_n act._n 9_o 16._o and_o teach_v in_o
soul_n endanger_v by_o such_o salvo_n it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o true_a prophet_n and_o priest_n among_o they_o and_o will_v be_v so_o in_o all_o other_o place_n on_o like_a occasion_n by_o their_o preach_n and_o ministration_n to_o keep_v up_o sound_a knowledge_n among_o the_o people_n in_o these_o point_n yea_o though_o such_o preach_v and_o ministration_n make_v a_o breach_n between_o they_o and_o those_o defect_a teacher_n and_o it_o be_v the_o people_n duty_n to_o follow_v any_o among_o they_o who_o will_v teach_v they_o better_o when_o they_o can_v have_v such_o teacher_n as_o they_o have_v in_o our_o bless_a lord_n and_o his_o apostle_n whatever_o allowance_n under_o the_o favour_n of_o necessity_n man_n may_v have_v to_o keep_v on_o with_o such_o of_o which_o plea_n of_o necessity_n i_o shall_v say_v more_o hereafter_o yet_o where_o there_o be_v choice_n of_o other_o more_o orthodox_n they_o be_v no_o long_o tie_v to_o such_o pastor_n as_o open_o and_o obstinate_o preach_v up_o damnable_a practice_n to_o disgrace_v religion_n and_o endanger_v soul_n bear_v they_o may_v for_o a_o time_n in_o hope_n of_o reformation_n and_o because_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o prevent_v than_o to_o patch_v up_o breach_n wise_a lover_n both_o of_o peace_n and_o truth_n will_v not_o be_v hasty_a in_o come_v to_o extremity_n but_o if_o still_o they_o will_v persist_v and_o go_v on_o in_o such_o pernicious_a way_n and_o doctrine_n good_a people_n and_o pastor_n may_v withdraw_v themselves_o from_o their_o communion_n as_o st._n paul_n say_v in_o the_o place_n already_o cite_v and_o the_o reason_n of_o break_v off_o on_o such_o defection_n from_o necessary_a point_n either_o of_o faith_n or_o practice_n be_v still_o more_o urgent_a if_o there_o be_v no_o liberty_n leave_v in_o any_o church_n for_o other_o pastor_n to_o stand_v up_o ministerial_o or_o exercise_v their_o ministry_n in_o defence_n of_o those_o necessary_a point_n whilst_o they_o continue_v with_o and_o adhere_v to_o they_o for_o then_o the_o concealment_n and_o suppression_n of_o necessary_a truth_n be_v make_v a_o condition_n of_o communion_n and_o other_o pastor_n if_o they_o will_v hold_v on_o with_o they_o must_v suffer_v 14._o that_o good_a thing_n which_o have_v be_v commit_v to_o their_o trust_n to_o be_v extinguish_v without_o stand_v up_o according_a to_o their_o duty_n and_o solemn_a undertake_n to_o minister_v the_o same_o which_o will_v make_v it_o necessary_a for_o all_o who_o will_v choose_v to_o stand_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o truth_n rather_o than_o by_o such_o his_o apostatise_v servant_n and_o corrupter_n thereof_o to_o depart_v from_o they_o when_o therefore_o the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o any_o church_n fall_v off_o from_o minister_a necessary_a christian_a doctrine_n or_o worship_n and_o especial_o when_o they_o come_v to_o allow_v their_o communion_n to_o none_o who_o will_v go_v on_o administer_a the_o same_o they_o thereby_o loosen_v the_o band_n of_o union_n and_o break_v that_o spiritual_a dependence_n and_o relation_n which_o the_o people_n and_o other_o inferior_a pastor_n aught_o to_o have_v upon_o they_o they_o be_v no_o long_o the_o true_a joint_n to_o compact_v the_o member_n nor_o the_o head_n of_o unity_n to_o keep_v together_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v at_o the_o reformation_n under_o queen_n elizabeth_n with_o the_o popish_a bishop_n who_o corrupt_a worship_n and_o doctrine_n yea_o and_o rigorous_a exaction_n of_o compliance_n with_o both_o from_o all_o who_o expect_v to_o hold_v communion_n with_o they_o have_v set_v their_o church_n at_o liberty_n to_o go_v off_o from_o they_o as_o i_o former_o observe_v and_o to_o seek_v more_o orthodox_n bishop_n in_o their_o room_n and_o so_o it_o will_v be_v in_o the_o case_n of_o other_o bishop_n especial_o of_o those_o who_o espouse_v a_o schism_n and_o communicate_v with_o anti-bishop_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o true_a bishop_n if_o they_o fall_v from_o minister_a necessary_a christian_a truth_n whether_o of_o faith_n or_o of_o moral_a doctrine_n and_o worship_n as_o in_o the_o forementioned_a case_n and_o when_o the_o church_n be_v thus_o loose_v of_o its_o dependence_n on_o their_o person_n by_o the_o defection_n of_o such_o err_a bishop_n it_o may_v be_v free_a to_o unite_v itself_o to_o other_o orthodox_n bishop_n either_o to_o receive_v such_o a_o one_o for_o its_o own_o local_a bishop_n as_o be_v do_v at_o the_o reformation_n by_o substitute_v orthodox_n and_o reform_a bishop_n into_o the_o see_v of_o popish_a bishop_n or_o till_o it_o can_v have_v that_o by_o receive_v the_o benefit_n of_o episcopal_n and_o priestly_a act_n from_o any_o other_o orthodox_n bishop_n and_o clery_n as_o they_o can_v be_v meet_v with_o it_o may_v fetch_v all_o orthodox_n ministration_n and_o spiritual_a function_n from_o other_o place_n when_o it_o can_v have_v they_o from_o a_o orthodox_n pastor_n or_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n at_o home_n this_o it_o may_v do_v say_v 178._o st._n cyprian_n in_o this_o case_n as_o well_o as_o the_o mariner_n when_o their_o own_o port_n be_v sand_v or_o otherwise_o insecure_a may_v pass_v it_o by_o and_o put_v in_o at_o another_o or_o as_o well_o as_o the_o traveller_n when_o their_o own_o inn_n be_v beset_v with_o thief_n may_v take_v up_o their_o lodging_n at_o another_o which_o be_v more_o safe_a and_o as_o the_o people_n of_o such_o defect_a bishop_n and_o pastor_n may_v seek_v out_o and_o unite_v themselves_o to_o other_o for_o all_o necessary_a ministration_n so_o may_v those_o other_o orthodox_n bishop_n and_o clergy_n who_o be_v seek_v to_o be_v free_a to_o receive_v and_o supply_v they_o this_o be_v plain_a of_o both_o because_o the_o church_n whereof_o the_o one_o be_v member_n and_o the_o other_o be_v bishop_n or_o priest_n be_v a_o catholic_n church_n for_o be_v catholic_n its_o baptism_n and_o ordination_n be_v catholic_n and_o make_v as_o the_o one_o christian_n so_o the_o other_o bishop_n and_o priest_n that_o must_v be_v own_v for_o such_o over_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o not_o only_o in_o some_o limit_a part_n or_o district_v thereof_o and_o betwixt_o the_o member_n of_o this_o catholic_n church_n there_o be_v to_o be_v a_o communion_n of_o saint_n so_o that_o the_o one_o may_v receive_v as_o member_n and_o the_o other_o administer_v all_o spiritual_a act_n and_o function_n as_o pastor_n as_o there_o be_v opportunity_n and_o as_o need_n require_v when_o the_o orthodox_n member_n of_o such_o defect_a pastor_n come_v to_o they_o consider_v the_o catholicism_n of_o the_o church_n though_o never_o so_o far_o remote_a in_o place_n they_o must_v own_v they_o as_o their_o brethren_n and_o profess_v the_o communion_n of_o saint_n they_o must_v receive_v they_o to_o their_o communion_n when_o shune_v the_o rock_n in_o their_o own_o defecting_a church_n they_o seek_v a_o more_o safe_a harbour_n in_o they_o it_o be_v their_o part_n 178._o to_o receive_v they_o with_o a_o prompt_a humanity_n and_o to_o give_v they_o such_o reception_n as_o be_v give_v to_o he_o who_o have_v fall_v among_o thief_n in_o the_o etc._n gospel_n not_o only_o to_o let_v they_o in_o but_o to_o take_v all_o due_a and_o needful_a care_n of_o they_o say_v st._n cyprian_n yea_o and_o as_o christian_a bishop_n they_o be_v to_o look_v upon_o this_o reception_n and_o these_o ministration_n as_o one_o part_n of_o their_o episcopal_a charge_n for_o they_o be_v bishop_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n as_o well_o as_o of_o their_o own_o see_v and_o have_v relation_n to_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o well_o as_o to_o their_o own_o diocese_n the_o administration_n he_o have_v receive_v be_v not_o only_o for_o his_o own_o flock_n but_o voss._n for_o the_o church_n in_o common_a say_v st._n ignatius_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o philadelphia_n and_o bin._n christ_n have_v commit_v to_o you_o not_o only_o your_o own_o but_o the_o universal_a church_n say_v eleutherius_fw-la to_o the_o gallicane_n bishop_n and_o though_o as_o be_v more_o especial_o bishop_n of_o that_o place_n they_o have_v more_o particular_a obligation_n to_o look_v after_o their_o own_o flock_n yet_o as_o catholic_n bishop_n they_o must_v be_v concern_v for_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o look_v on_o it_o or_o any_o destitute_a part_n thereof_o as_o their_o own_o as_o occasion_n require_v 71._o it_o behoove_v we_o all_o to_o extend_v our_o care_n and_o watch_v over_o the_o body_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n who_o member_n be_v dispose_v through_o each_o of_o the_o varicus_fw-la province_n say_v the_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n of_o rome_n to_o cyprian_a on_o his_o inform_v they_o of_o the_o deposition_n of_o privatus_fw-la lambesitanus_n the_o heretic_n and_o unum_fw-la gregem_fw-la pascimus_fw-la though_o we_o be_v many_o pastor_n yet_o we_o be_v to_o look_v upon_o all_o as_o one_o flock_n 178._o say_v st._n
doctrine_n or_o to_o be_v one_o with_o they_o in_o error_n and_o wickedness_n be_v not_o charity_n but_o destruction_n to_o those_o who_o be_v seduce_v by_o they_o if_o such_o defection_n from_o pure_a worship_n and_o doctrine_n be_v their_o case_n the_o guilt_n of_o make_v a_o division_n lie_v plain_o at_o their_o door_n in_o such_o breach_n st._n paul_n note_v the_o divider_n from_o the_o doctrine_n as_o make_v the_o schism_n and_o not_o the_o faithful_a adherer_n to_o it_o who_o refuse_v to_o break_v off_o from_o it_o in_o order_n to_o their_o keep_n on_o with_o they_o mark_v those_o as_o cause_v the_o division_n or_o offence_n who_o go_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n which_o you_o have_v learn_v say_v he_o rom._n 16._o 17._o and_o division_n make_v by_o such_o defection_n be_v incurable_a by_o any_o thing_n but_o their_o own_o repentance_n and_o return_n to_o their_o former_a way_n their_o brethren_n can_v not_o heal_v or_o close_v they_o by_o follow_v they_o in_o their_o desection_n because_o that_o be_v to_o be_v false_a to_o truth_n and_o to_o their_o own_o and_o other_o soul_n which_o be_v all_o in_o danger_n of_o perish_v by_o stray_v from_o the_o same_o nay_o shall_v they_o do_v as_o they_o desire_v and_o all_o come_v over_o that_o will_v only_o be_v a_o false_a and_o seem_a cure_n but_o real_o make_v the_o breach_n wide_o for_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o christian_n from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o end_n be_v but_o one_o church_n and_o those_o christian_a society_n which_o make_v up_o this_o one_o church_n be_v the_o several_a church_n of_o all_o time_n and_o place_n all_o true_a christian_n which_o now_o be_v or_o former_o have_v be_v or_o hereafter_o shall_v be_v be_v all_o member_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o body_n as_o i_o former_o show_v so_o that_o the_o unity_n which_o good_a christian_n be_v to_o aim_v at_o be_v to_o appear_v of_o one_o society_n and_o communion_n with_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o faithful_a christian_n from_o first_o to_o last_o with_o all_o the_o faithful_a who_o have_v keep_v to_o this_o unity_n and_o be_v now_o in_o heaven_n as_o well_o as_o with_o all_o who_o either_o now_o be_v or_o hereafter_o shall_v be_v in_o earth_n do_v the_o same_o or_o to_o be_v find_v unite_v and_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o body_n or_o general_a collection_n and_o assembly_n of_o saint_n who_o shall_v all_o appear_v together_o as_o one_o body_n that_o have_v keep_v up_o the_o faith_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n in_o opposition_n to_o all_o heretical_a or_o schismatical_a oppugner_n thereof_o at_o the_o last_o day_n and_o they_o be_v lamentable_o out_o and_o take_v their_o aim_n too_o narrow_a who_o look_v only_o at_o keep_v a_o external_a union_n with_o the_o assembly_n and_o religious_a society_n of_o their_o own_o place_n and_o time_n though_o that_o be_v in_o break_v off_o from_o the_o way_n and_o communion_n of_o all_o the_o faithful_a christian_n of_o other_o place_n at_o that_o time_n and_o of_o all_o that_o be_v go_v before_o they_o and_o will_v make_v they_o appear_v separately_z from_o the_o general_a assembly_n and_o great_a collection_n of_o saint_n at_o the_o last_o day_n now_o true_a doctrine_n and_o worship_n as_o i_o have_v show_v be_v among_o the_o chief_a ligament_n in_o this_o body_n of_o christ_n holy_a catholic_n church_n and_o if_o even_o any_o regular_a bishop_n or_o metropolitan_n with_o their_o respective_a society_n or_o church_n break_v off_o from_o any_o necessary_a truth_n or_o worship_n of_o christ_n they_o break_v off_o at_o the_o same_o time_n from_o all_o this_o great_a body_n of_o faithful_a christian_n of_o all_o other_o other_o place_n and_o time_n who_o be_v all_o unite_a and_o incorporate_v in_o they_o and_o stand_v upon_o they_o and_o if_o these_o defector_n appear_v to_o make_v the_o generality_n or_o great_a number_n in_o their_o own_o particular_a time_n and_o country_n yet_o be_v they_o but_o a_o handful_n compare_v to_o that_o general_n body_n or_o collection_n on_o the_o other_o side_n who_o they_o have_v defect_a and_o break_v from_o and_o who_o will_v stand_v all_o in_o one_o compact_a body_n against_o they_o at_o the_o last_o day_n viz._n the_o catholic_n church_n of_o all_o time_n and_o place_n so_o that_o those_o few_o faithful_a among_o they_o who_o continue_v sirm_a and_o stand_v out_o against_o their_o defection_n do_v not_o go_v off_o from_o the_o main_a body_n or_o great_a number_n but_o stick_v to_o they_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o all_o age_n and_o country_n which_o make_v the_o vast_a body_n and_o infinite_o the_o great_a number_n be_v in_o reality_n with_o they_o the_o catholic_n church_n consist_v of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n of_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n martyr_n and_o confessor_n and_o of_o all_o the_o true_o faithful_a who_o have_v go_v before_o we_o be_v now_o or_o shall_v be_v after_o we_o when_o all_o be_v do_v will_v make_v the_o body_n and_o those_o few_o faithful_a christian_n stick_v to_o this_o when_o the_o numerous_a defector_n in_o those_o country_n start_n from_o it_o stick_v to_o the_o body_n so_o that_o as_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n declare_v of_o those_o who_o break_v off_o communion_n with_o their_o bishop_n yea_o before_o synodical_a sentence_n when_o once_o they_o open_o teach_v any_o heresy_n condemn_v by_o the_o holy-fathers_n or_o council_n by_o so_o do_v 15._o they_o do_v not_o rend_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n by_o schism_n but_o study_v to_o free_v or_o defend_v it_o against_o schism_n or_o division_n so_o at_o such_o time_n they_o must_v bespeak_v their_o brethren_n as_o st._n cyprian_n do_v the_o confessor_n who_o side_v with_o the_o schismatic_a novatian_a 89._o because_o we_o can_v not_o leave_v the_o church_n and_o come_v over_o to_o you_o which_o instead_o of_o patch_v up_o will_v be_v to_o break_v and_o divide_v the_o church_n concord_n and_o unanimity_n we_o beseech_v you_o by_o all_o the_o way_n we_o can_v that_o you_o will_v return_v and_o come_v back_o again_o to_o your_o mother_n the_o church_n and_o to_o our_o fraternity_n by_o keep_v then_o to_o the_o necessary_a doctrine_n and_o worship_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o of_o our_o own_o church_n we_o keep_v unite_v to_o they_o and_o so_o far_o as_o we_o break_v off_o from_o these_o we_o answerable_o break_v off_o from_o they_o and_o therefore_o the_o run_v in_o of_o more_o into_o such_o defection_n instead_o of_o close_v up_o the_o schism_n will_v increase_v it_o it_o will_v only_o make_v the_o more_o people_n guilty_a of_o divide_v and_o stand_v off_o from_o christ_n and_o from_o the_o catholic_n church_n as_o that_o contain_v all_o orthodox_n christian_n and_o right_a church_n who_o be_v go_v before_o we_o or_o be_v now_o or_o shall_v be_v after_o we_o yea_o from_o all_o their_o ancestor_n during_o all_o the_o succession_n of_o they_o to_o their_o unhappy_a defection_n in_o their_o own_o church_n and_o even_o from_o themselves_o in_o all_o their_o own_o best_a day_n whilst_o they_o stand_v true_a to_o their_o own_o pure_a worship_n and_o orthodox_n principles_n which_o be_v such_o a_o way_n of_o heal_a schism_n as_o rebellion_n be_v of_o remedy_v grievance_n that_o be_v instead_o of_o take_v any_o off_o it_o bring_v abundance_n more_o upon_o we_o and_o this_o make_v the_o charge_n of_o schism_n strong_a and_o more_o aggravate_v in_o the_o forementioned_a case_n where_o the_o corruption_n of_o doctrine_n and_o worship_n make_v they_o a_o corrupt_a church_n as_o well_o as_o the_o set_n up_o of_o anti-bishop_n make_v they_o a_o schismatical_a church_n there_o be_v plain_o a_o schism_n in_o make_v of_o anti-bishop_n which_o be_v a_o set_n up_o of_o opposite_a altar_n but_o it_o be_v a_o more_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a schism_n when_o these_o opposite_a altar_n be_v set_v up_o for_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a purpose_n to_o head_n sinful_a and_o unchristian_a worship_n and_o doctrine_n that_o schism_n be_v complicate_v with_o heresy_n or_o other_o dangerous_a depravation_n of_o religion_n it_o be_v not_o only_o make_v a_o breach_n in_o the_o church_n but_o withal_o it_o be_v form_v a_o party_n against_o truth_n and_o holiness_n it_o be_v give_v religion_n a_o second_o blow_v to_o maintain_v a_o former_a and_o set_v up_o one_o ill_a thing_n to_o secure_v a_o worse_a it_o seek_v to_o confederate_a man_n in_o the_o breach_n of_o unity_n that_o it_o may_v hold_v they_o fast_o in_o breach_n of_o piety_n or_o moral_a honesty_n and_o a_o schism_n so_o set_v up_o to_o strike_v at_o religion_n be_v more_o impious_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o of_o all_o good_a man_n and_o the_o gild_n thereof_o be_v more_o flagrant_a and_o beside_o it_o be_v incurable_a by_o any_o but_o themselves_o for_o the_o schismatic_n run_v into_o such_o
a_o breach_n to_o maintain_v a_o quarrel_n against_o truth_n and_o righteousness_n and_o in_o that_o they_o must_v go_v by_o themselves_o for_o none_o who_o will_v take_v any_o due_a care_n of_o their_o precious_a soul_n aught_o to_o bear_v they_o company_n so_o there_o can_v be_v no_o reunion_n till_o they_o return_v from_o their_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a schism_n to_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n and_o righteousness_n which_o they_o have_v forsake_v chap._n v._o of_o the_o communion_n of_o good_a christian_n or_o with_o who_o they_o be_v to_o join_v in_o divine_a office_n under_o a_o schism_n have_v say_v thus_o much_o to_o show_v on_o any_o division_n of_o church_n whilst_o faithful_a pastor_n stand_v firm_a to_o their_o ministration_n in_o the_o forementioned_a case_n who_o make_v the_o schism_n and_o who_o can_v cure_v it_o i_o now_o proceed_v 3._o in_o the_o three_o place_n to_o treat_v of_o the_o communion_n of_o good_a christian_n under_o a_o schism_n and_o how_o they_o be_v to_o carry_v themselves_o towards_o schismatic_n as_o for_o their_o communion_n it_o be_v plain_a in_o division_n between_o right_n and_o wrong_n both_o as_o to_o the_o church-head_n and_o religious_a doctrine_n and_o worship_n they_o ought_v to_o take_v the_o right_a side_n as_o they_o who_o be_v at_o the_o head_n of_o that_o be_v the_o canonical_a and_o rightful_a bishop_n they_o be_v bind_v to_o communicate_v with_o they_o for_o the_o rightful_a bishop_n be_v the_o true_a head_n of_o union_n the_o member_n must_v keep_v true_a to_o their_o head_n and_o hold_v communion_n therewith_o and_o this_o they_o be_v tie_v to_o by_o all_o the_o gospel-precept_n about_o union_n which_o require_v their_o 11._o be_v one_o or_o 4._o one_o body_n or_o 3._o keep_v the_o bond_n of_o peace_n in_o church_n for_o this_o unity_n and_o peace_n of_o church_n must_v bind_v they_o to_o keep_v unite_v and_o at_o peace_n with_o their_o bishop_n who_o under_o christ_n be_v the_o governor_n and_o spiritual_a head_n thereof_o and_o by_o that_o grand_a virtue_n of_o charity_n so_o often_o and_o earnest_o 13._o require_v of_o the_o member_n and_o that_o 14._o above_o all_o thing_n that_o 1._o they_o may_v edify_v or_o build_v up_o one_o another_o into_o a_o spiritual_a society_n for_o this_o charity_n which_o be_v ●_o the_o bond_n to_o bind_v the_o member_n together_o not_o only_o in_o private_a affection_n but_o into_o one_o common_a body_n or_o church_n must_v bind_v they_o all_o to_o these_o rightful_a bishop_n who_o be_v the_o head_n and_o ruler_n of_o that_o body_n that_o by_o keep_v unite_v to_o those_o bishop_n they_o may_v keep_v one_o society_n and_o not_o be_v break_v into_o several_a society_n and_o according_o st._n cyprian_n press_v that_o charity_n which_o 13._o st._n paul_n make_v so_o necessary_a to_o the_o acceptance_n of_o all_o other_o virtue_n even_o faith_n or_o martyrdom_n itself_o as_o indispensable_o oblige_v all_o good_a christian_n to_o keep_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o their_o true_a and_o rightful_a bishop_n as_o i_o observe_v 3_o before_o and_o as_o these_o true_a and_o rightful_a bishop_n be_v at_o the_o head_n of_o necessary_a gospel-worship_n and_o doctrine_n when_o their_o opposer_n fall_v off_o from_o they_o good_a christian_n be_v yet_o more_o bind_v to_o hold_v to_o their_o communion_n they_o be_v tie_v thereto_o then_o not_o only_o for_o the_o rightful_a bishop_n but_o also_o for_o pure_a worship_n and_o necessary_a truth_n sake_n for_o true_a christian_n must_v seek_v to_o communicate_v in_o these_o and_o that_o must_v be_v by_o communicate_v in_o the_o ministration_n of_o those_o pastor_n which_o hold_v to_o they_o beside_o these_o in_o any_o competition_n arê_n christ_n true_a shepherd_n and_o trusty_a watchman_n and_o faithful_a guide_n and_o uncorrupt_a teacher_n and_o faithful_a minister_n because_o they_o be_v the_o man_n who_o faithful_o minister_v his_o word_n and_o give_v his_o warning_n and_o dispense_v that_o food_n which_o be_v to_o keep_v those_o soul_n alive_a who_o he_o have_v give_v they_o the_o care_n of_o and_o all_o these_o be_v no_o idle_a character_n but_o speak_v answerable_a obligation_n in_o the_o people_n as_o i_o have_v show_v 1_o before_o to_o attend_v on_o their_o ministration_n and_o unite_v themselves_o to_o they_o and_o this_o the_o scripture_n require_v in_o those_o precept_n which_o command_v we_o in_o 6._o glorify_v god_n to_o have_v one_o mind_n and_o mouth_n to_o be_v 10._o perfect_o join_v together_o in_o the_o same_o mind_n and_o judgement_n and_o speak_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o the_o like_a for_o this_o speak_n the_o same_o be_v speak_v the_o same_o with_o those_o who_o speak_v right_a not_o with_o those_o who_o speak_v wrong_a and_o this_o union_n of_o mind_n and_o judgement_n must_v be_v in_o unite_n with_o man_n of_o orthodox_n mind_n or_o that_o hold_v all_o necessary_a christian_a doctrine_n for_o if_o any_o fall_v off_o from_o these_o we_o must_v not_o be_v of_o one_o mind_n with_o they_o but_o of_o different_a mind_n i_o add_v moreover_o that_o association_n and_o union_n of_o church-member_n under_o bishop_n be_v for_o visible_a profession_n and_o ministration_n of_o pure_a worship_n and_o doctrine_n and_o therefore_o they_o must_v unite_v with_o those_o bishop_n who_o profess_v and_o administer_v the_o same_o yea_o their_o care_n of_o their_o own_o safety_n no_o less_o than_o the_o love_n of_o truth_n will_v make_v they_o fly_v to_o such_o pastor_n as_o the_o sailor_n do_v to_o the_o next_o safe_a port_n when_o their_o own_o be_v sand_v or_o the_o traveller_n to_o the_o next_o secure_a inn_n when_o their_o old_a one_o be_v beset_v with_o thief_n as_o st._n cyprian_n 178._o observe_v in_o this_o case_n and_o as_o they_o be_v thus_o to_o hold_v communion_n and_o unite_v themselves_o to_o those_o rightful_a bishop_n who_o keep_v to_o pure_a worship_n and_o doctrine_n so_o be_v they_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n to_o stand_v off_o from_o those_o who_o make_v the_o schism_n to_o maintain_v a_o sinful_a worship_n or_o corrupt_a doctrine_n i_o do_v not_o say_v they_o be_v to_o look_v on_o these_o schismatic_n and_o defector_n as_o quite_o fall_v from_o the_o relation_n and_o title_n of_o brethren_n a_o schismatical_a or_o excommunicate_a christian_a be_v still_o a_o christian_n not_o a_o infidel_n or_o heathen_a and_o whilst_o they_o continue_v christian_n they_o retain_v though_o not_o so_o much_o claim_v as_o other_o yet_o some_o claim_n to_o christian_a brotherhood_n albeit_o they_o have_v lose_v their_o claim_n to_o communion_n have_v no_o company_n or_o communion_n with_o the_o segregated_a man_n say_v st._n paul_n yet_o count_v he_o not_o as_o a_o enemy_n but_o admonish_v he_o as_o a_o brother_n 2_o thes._n 3._o 14._o 15._o and_o optatus_n call_v the_o schismatical_a donatist_n brethren_n though_o nostros_fw-la they_o will_v not_o call_v the_o catholic_n so_o or_o be_v call_v so_o by_o they_o and_o say_v that_o 235._o they_o can_v not_o but_o be_v our_o brethren_n though_o they_o be_v no_o good_a brethren_n because_o we_o and_o they_o have_v one_o spiritual_a nativity_n their_o baptism_n which_o be_v the_o christian_n birth_n be_v a_o valid_a baptism_n though_o administer_v in_o a_o schism_n and_o the_o catholic_n church_n as_o 10._o st._n austin_n say_v thereby_o generate_a son_n u●to_o god_n which_o son_n must_v be_v our_o brethren_n for_o brotherhood_n they_o look_v on_o as_o consequent_a on_o nativity_n and_o go_v along_o with_o it_o but_o communion_n as_o go_v with_o spiritual_a society_n and_o conversation_n though_o at_o other_o time_n by_o brotherhood_n they_o understand_v not_o only_o the_o spiritual_a nativity_n but_o also_o the_o spiritual_a society_n and_o communion_n of_o brethren_n and_o then_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n be_v shut_v out_o from_o that_o name_n and_o salutation_n but_o though_o as_o not_o have_v fall_v from_o their_o baptism_n and_o christianity_n they_o may_v on_o the_o score_n of_o their_o common_a nativity_n still_o admit_v they_o to_o be_v christian_a brethren_n yet_o as_o be_v schismatical_a and_o defect_a brethren_n they_o must_v reject_v and_o stand_v off_o from_o their_o communion_n they_o must_v disow_v the_o erroneous_a and_o schismatical_a bishop_n and_o minister_n disclaim_v all_o ecclesiastical_a dependence_n upon_o they_o and_o hold_v off_o from_o their_o religious_a assembly_n and_o not_o come_v to_o join_v in_o their_o prayer_n and_o sacrament_n and_o sacred_a office_n church-communion_n lie_v main_o in_o join_v in_o these_o assembly_n and_o sacred_a office_n as_o excommunication_n lie_v in_o the_o exclude_v and_o debar_v from_o the_o participation_n thereof_o they_o be_v to_o avoid_v they_o as_o they_o be_v associate_n or_o adherent_n of_o anti-bishop_n and_o maker_n of_o a_o schism_n for_o the_o scripture-direction_n be_v to_o mark_v those_o which_o cause_n division_n and_o offence_n and_o to_o avoid_v they_o ro._n 16._o 17._o
the_o church_n for_o when_o they_o fill_v all_o place_n they_o will_v be_v meet_v with_o in_o all_o place_n and_o intermix_v in_o all_o deal_n and_o then_o not_o to_o have_v any_o company_n or_o deal_n with_o such_o they_o must_v needs_o go_v out_o of_o the_o world_n which_o st._n paul_n give_v as_o one_o reason_n of_o relaxation_n and_o allowance_n in_o this_o case_n 1_o cor._n 5._o 10._o so_o that_o continue_v still_o to_o shun_v spiritual_a or_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n with_o such_o maker_n of_o schism_n especial_o for_o the_o set_n up_o of_o a_o sinful_a worship_n and_o unchristian_a doctrine_n and_o practice_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o defection_n from_o the_o apostolical_a and_o primitive_a charity_n that_o it_o be_v a_o keep_n up_o to_o it_o and_o be_v only_o a_o retain_v of_o their_o first_o love_n which_o ought_v in_o all_o time_n faithful_o to_o be_v keep_v on_o in_o all_o true_a church_n now_o as_o to_o the_o person_n who_o this_o will_v affect_v and_o who_o communion_n by_o this_o rule_n be_v to_o be_v shune_v in_o such_o case_n it_o bar_n this_o communion_n with_o those_o who_o set_v up_o and_o make_v the_o anti-bishop_n or_o who_o side_n and_o take_v part_n with_o they_o 1._o it_o affect_v the_o elector_n who_o choose_v the_o man_n and_o their_o ordainer_n and_o consecrator_n who_o lay_v hand_n on_o they_o for_o these_o give_v head_n to_o the_o new_a body_n and_o create_v the_o schism_n other_o may_v seditious_o call_v for_o it_o or_o come_v in_o to_o it_o when_o once_o it_o be_v form_v but_o their_o part_n be_v to_o give_v it_o a_o head_n which_o formal_o constitute_v and_o set_v it_o up_o so_o that_o they_o be_v principal_n therein_o 2._o and_o those_o who_o own_o subjection_n and_o dependence_n on_o these_o anti-bishop_n in_o opposition_n to_o their_o old_a one_o and_o as_o member_n unite_v and_o incorporate_v under_o they_o thus_o it_o be_v among_o the_o pastor_n by_o who_o their_o authority_n be_v receive_v and_o who_o thereby_o all_o break_v off_o from_o the_o rightful_a bishop_n to_o who_o in_o all_o their_o ministration_n they_o ought_v to_o keep_v subject_a and_o dependent_a the_o rule_n of_o communion_n for_o priest_n and_o deacon_n towards_o their_o bishop_n be_v to_o do_v all_o public_a ministration_n according_a to_o his_o allowance_n and_o consent_n ap._n let_v the_o presbyter_n or_o deacon_n do_v nothing_o without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n say_v the_o apostolical_a canon_n and_o the_o council_n of_o 57_o laodicea_n afterward_o for_o it_o be_v the_o bishop_n to_o who_o trust_n the_o lord_n people_n be_v commit_v and_o from_o who_o a_o account_n of_o their_o soul_n will_v be_v require_v and_o 6._o if_o any_o will_v be_v for_o have_v the_o office_n of_o the_o church_n without_o the_o concurrence_n of_o a_o fit_a presbyter_n who_o officiate_n according_a to_o the_o bishop_n approbation_n and_o allowance_n let_v he_o be_v anathema_n say_v the_o council_n of_o gangra_n and_o 31._o if_o any_o clergy_n celebrate_v divine_a office_n in_o private_a oratory_n or_o baptize_v not_o trullo_n according_a to_o the_o mind_n and_o allowance_n of_o the_o bishop_n but_o beside_o or_o contrariant_n to_o it_o let_v they_o incur_v deposition_n say_v the_o council_n in_o trullo_n and_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n 66._o the_o church_n be_v settle_v upon_o the_o bishop_n and_o every_o act_n of_o the_o church_n ●ught_v to_o be_v govern_v by_o they_o say_v st._n cyprian_n voss._n let_v none_o do_v any_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o concern_v the_o church_n or_o public_a service_n without_o the_o bishop_n say_v st._n ignatin_n that_o holy_a martyr_n and_o contemporary_a of_o the_o apostle_n but_o let_v that_o he_o repute_v a_o valid_a eucharist_n which_o be_v celebrate_v by_o those_o who_o keep_v under_o he_o or_o which_o be_v administer_v with_o his_o leave_n and_o that_o a_o due_a baptism_n which_o be_v with_o his_o consent_n or_o approbation_n 47._o it_o be_v necessary_a say_v he_o that_o you_o shall_v do_v nothing_o without_o the_o bishop_n like_z as_o also_o you_o do_v 43._o the_o spirit_n add_v he_o in_o another_o place_n have_v preach_v this_o say_v do_v nothing_o without_o the_o bishop_n love_v unity_n fly_v division_n 32._o and_o they_o who_o continue_v to_o call_v he_o bishop_n but_o yet_o do_v all_o thing_n without_o he_o i_o think_v be_v not_o man_n of_o good_a conscience_n because_o they_o do_v not_o celebrate_v their_o solemn_a assembly_n according_a to_o christ_n precept_n and_o to_o like_o purpose_n 17._o tertullian_n col._n st._n jerome_n and_o other_o and_o this_o way_n of_o administer_a all_o office_n with_o his_o approbation_n and_o allowance_n st._n ignatius_n declare_v be_v the_o way_n for_o they_o to_o keep_v unity_n with_o their_o bishop_n for_o say_v he_o 33._o as_o our_o lord_n do_v nothing_o without_o his_o father_n be_v unite_v to_o he_o not_o act_v without_o he_o either_o by_o himself_o or_o by_o his_o apostle_n so_o neither_o do_v you_o any_o thing_n without_o your_o bishop_n and_o his_o presbyter_n but_o when_o the_o priest_n and_o deacon_n of_o a_o diocese_n turn_v over_o from_o their_o rightful_a bishop_n to_o the_o anti-bishop_n they_o live_v in_o a_o slagrant_a breach_n of_o these_o rule_n of_o communion_n they_o do_v all_o their_o ministration_n then_o without_o their_o bishop_n put_v in_o some_o thing_n into_o divine_a office_n and_o put_v out_o other_o and_o observe_v day_n and_o other_o thing_n belong_v to_o their_o ministration_n not_o only_o without_o but_o quite_o against_o his_o consent_n and_o approbation_n and_o altogether_o by_o the_o authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o another_o who_o be_v set_v up_o against_o he_o which_o be_v to_o separate_v as_o far_o as_o they_o can_v from_o he_o who_o ought_v to_o be_v their_o principle_n of_o union_n and_o to_o minister_v in_o a_o state_n of_o full_a and_o flame_v schism_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v also_o in_o the_o assembly_n over_o which_o those_o rightful_a bishop_n ought_v to_o preside_v or_o in_o the_o church_n of_o their_o own_o diocese_n if_o they_o will_v keep_v in_o the_o state_n of_o unity_n they_o shall_v keep_v unite_v to_o their_o rightful_a bishop_n who_o be_v the_o head_n of_o union_n to_o their_o several_a flock_n and_o shall_v stick_v to_o they_o and_o the_o clergy_n of_o their_o communion_n for_o divine_a office_n oxon._n where_o their_o bishop_n appear_v there_o let_v the_o multitude_n be_v with_o they_o like_a as_o where_o jesus_n christ_n go_v there_o the_o catholic_n church_n go_v too_o say_v st._n ignatius_n but_o if_o they_o break_v away_o from_o all_o dependence_n on_o they_o and_o from_o all_o recourse_n to_o their_o ministration_n to_o depend_v on_o the_o anti-bishop_n and_o to_o resort_v to_o they_o that_o make_v they_o all_o schismatic_n for_o all_o these_o assembly_n of_o people_n and_o pastor_n make_v the_o schismatical_a body_n whereof_o the_o anti-bishop_n be_v the_o head_n as_o the_o bishop_n set_v up_o for_o the_o schismatical_a head_n so_o the_o pastor_n and_o people_n who_o turn_v over_o to_o they_o and_o assemble_v under_o they_o come_v in_o to_o be_v their_o schismatical_a member_n they_o form_v themselves_o into_o one_o church_n by_o erect_v a_o ecclesiastical_a union_n and_o communion_n among_o themselves_o and_o this_o be_v a_o schismatical_a church_n as_o consist_v all_o of_o a_o party_n of_o member_n break_v off_o from_o their_o true_a head_n or_o lawful_a bishop_n 3._o further_o it_o may_v also_o affect_v other_o bishop_n and_o church_n who_o will_v take_v their_o part_n and_o communicate_v with_o they_o for_o catholic_n unity_n be_v to_o be_v preserve_v in_o the_o church_n i._n e._n unity_n and_o communion_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v up_o among_o all_o church_n and_o this_o be_v by_o rule_n of_o accord_n and_o correspondence_n which_o give_v the_o same_o church_n act_n or_o matter_n the_o same_o effect_n in_o all_o place_n of_o which_o rule_n i_o have_v 2._o before_o discourse_v more_o at_o large_a and_o these_o rule_n will_v keep_v up_o catholic_n unity_n and_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n between_o all_o bishop_n and_o church_n since_o this_o way_n they_o all_o communicate_v or_o all_o in_o common_a refuse_n to_o do_v it_o with_o the_o same_o person_n and_o therefore_o if_o any_o bishop_n of_o one_o church_n will_v side_n and_o have_v communion_n with_o anti-bishop_n or_o with_o the_o schismatic_n or_o heretic_n of_o other_o church_n he_o thereby_o break_v the_o rule_n of_o union_n as_o well_o as_o they_o and_o become_v involve_v in_o schism_n like_o one_o of_o they_o for_o he_o be_v as_o much_o oblige_v as_o other_o in_o care_n of_o maintain_v unity_n to_o keep_v off_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o such_o schismatic_n yea_o in_o care_n of_o catholic_n unity_n and_o communion_n to_o keep_v off_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o those_o who_o make_v
corruption_n of_o both_o then_o the_o way_n of_o worship_n and_o tenet_n themselves_o be_v form_v into_o party_n man_n be_v divide_v then_o in_o opinion_n and_o devotion_n and_o each_o way_n have_v a_o distinct_a body_n or_o society_n visible_o to_o bear_v they_o up_o and_o profess_v they_o and_o when_o opposite_a communion_n be_v thus_o set_v up_o for_o opposite_a worship_n and_o article_n man_n communion_n must_v go_v according_a to_o their_o opinion_n of_o the_o worship_n and_o doctrine_n for_o in_o a_o breach_n make_v for_o these_o it_o will_v not_o be_v expect_v that_o man_n shall_v unite_v themselves_o to_o those_o of_o a_o contrary_a mind_n and_o keep_v off_o from_o those_o of_o the_o same_o mind_n but_o take_v part_n with_o those_o who_o agree_v with_o themselves_o we_o must_v choose_v the_o church_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o religion_n and_o unite_v to_o that_o as_o christ_n true_a church_n which_o stick_v to_o the_o true_a religion_n church-unity_n and_o association_n always_o suppose_v and_o follow_v true_a christian_a worship_n and_o doctrine_n but_o never_o tie_v any_o to_o 3._o go_v off_o and_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o same_o as_o i_o show_v †_o before_o such_o will_v be_v the_o effect_n of_o the_o precede_a apostolical_a and_o ecclesiastical_a rule_n for_o keep_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o for_o avoid_v communion_n with_o the_o schismatical_a breaker_n thereof_o and_o their_o assembly_n when_o a_o schism_n be_v make_v by_o set_v up_o anti-bishop_n to_o head_n immoral_a or_o otherwise_o sinful_a worship_n doctrine_n or_o practice_n as_o in_o the_o forementioned_a case_n the_o meeting_n or_o communicate_v in_o a_o schism_n have_v a_o gild_n and_o criminalness_n of_o its_o own_o though_o the_o matter_n of_o all_o the_o prayer_n be_v good_a and_o the_o preach_a orthodox_n which_o they_o be_v call_v to_o communicate_v in_o ●●_o it_o alone_o be_v a_o bar_n to_o communion_n and_o will_v have_v the_o forecited_a effect_n as_o i_o have_v show_v but_o it_o be_v strong_a when_o it_o be_v set_v up_o for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o error_n and_o corrupt_a devotion_n and_o when_o man_n be_v 〈◊〉_d into_o schism_n to_o be_v draw_v on_o to_o other_o wickedness_n viz._n to_o make_v 〈◊〉_d of_o moral_a conscience_n and_o to_o profane_a god_n by_o immoral-prayer_n as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o abovenamed_a case_n chap._n vi_o of_o ordination_n of_o anti-bishop_n which_o though_o always_o schismatical_a be_v not_o always_o nullity_n what_o i_o have_v say_v in_o the_o forego_n chapter_n i_o think_v may_v be_v sufficient_a as_o to_o the_o point_n of_o communion_n with_o anti-bishop_n and_o then_o adherent_n but_o i_o conceive_v it_o may_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o add_v something_o further_o concern_v their_o order_n since_o the_o validity_n or_o invalidity_n thereof_o ●●_o of_o great_a consequence_n and_o importance_n to_o the_o church_n at_o such_o time_n one_o thing_n indeed_o be_v say_v by_o st._n cyprian_n about_o the_o ordain_v a_o opposite_a or_o anti-bishop_n against_o another_o in_o a_o church_n already_o fill_v as_o when_o novati●n_o be_v set_v up_o at_o rome_n against_o cornelius_n viz._n that_o the_o anti-bishop_n be_v no_o bishop_n whence_o some_o conclude_v that_o in_o reality_n he_o have_v not_o the_o episcopal_a power_n confer_v on_o he_o ox._n since_o after_o the_o first_o there_o can_v be_v a_o second_o bishop_n say_v he_o or_o two_o bishop_n at_o once_o in_o the_o same_o church_n whosoever_o be_v ordain_v after_o one_o be_v already_o in_o who_o ought_v to_o preside_v alone_o he_o be_v not_o real_o a_o second_o bishop_n but_o no_o bishop_n at_o all_o and_o if_o such_o opposite_a or_o anti-bishop_n receive_v or_o retain_v no_o episcopal_a power_n it_o be_v sure_a they_o can_v confer_v none_o and_o then_o they_o be_v real_o neither_o bishop_n not_o priest_n who_o be_v ordain_v by_o they_o and_o so_o neither_o good_a baptism_n at_o least_o according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o africane_n nor_o good_a sacrament_n which_o be_v of_o their_o administer_a as_o ox._n st._n cyprian_n and_o the_o africane_n answerable_a to_o this_o null_n of_o the_o ordination_n null_n also_o the_o baptism_n make_v by_o schismatic_n and_o then_o on_o every_o ordination_n of_o anti-bishop_n against_o they_o there_o will_v be_v a_o new_a and_o indispensible_a necessity_n for_o all_o the_o suffering_n and_o oppugned_a bishop_n to_o insist_v upon_o their_o own_o power_n and_o claim_n lest_o otherwise_o the_o church_n shall_v neither_o have_v bishop_n nor_o priest_n nor_o the_o people_n any_o valid_a sacrament_n and_o church_n administration_n for_o the_o anti_n bishop_n receive_v no_o power_n or_o authority_n for_o these_o administration_n from_o their_o ordainer_n their_o ordination_n be_v null_n as_o he_o say_v they_o can_v not_o be_v impower_v according_a to_o the_o christian_a rule_n of_o confer_v power_n without_o a_o new_a ordination_n the_o confer_v of_o order_n or_o of_o ministerial_a power_n be_v tie_v by_o our_o lord_n himself_o to_o a_o particular_a way_n viz._n imposition_n of_o hand_n by_o impower_v person_n in_o point_n of_o order_n as_o of_o baptism_n and_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n the_o effect_n be_v affix_v to_o the_o rite_n of_o god_n institution_n so_o that_o such_o imposition_n of_o hand_n must_v give_v they_o and_o if_o the_o former_a imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v null_a in_o these_o competition_n they_o can_v not_o have_v these_o power_n of_o order_n but_o by_o a_o new_a one_o the_o recede_v of_o the_o former_a bishop_n or_o his_o cease_n to_o make_v any_o further_a competition_n be_v they_o already_o vest_v with_o these_o power_n by_o their_o own_o ordination_n will_v give_v the_o anti-bishop_n scope_n to_o exercise_v the_o same_o and_o to_o do_v it_o alone_o without_o any_o rent_n or_o division_n but_o such_o recession_n be_v no_o ordination_n nor_o give_v they_o the_o episcopal_a power_n if_o they_o have_v they_o not_o before_o yea_o i_o add_v nor_o will_v any_o mere_a allowance_n or_o after-ratification_n of_o synod_n confer_v the_o same_o as_o i_o conceive_v without_o such_o new_a and_o valid_a imposition_n of_o hand_n when_o man_n pretend_v they_o have_v already_o receive_v these_o spiritual_a power_n meet_v allowance_n admit_v of_o their_o pretence_n but_o i_o see_v not_o how_o that_o alone_o shall_v confer_v the_o power_n if_o before_o they_o want_v they_o nor_o do_v mere_a say_n i_o allow_v thou_o to_o be_v a_o bishop_n or_o a_o priest_n without_o word_n not_o only_o pre-supposing_a but_o actual_o and_o from_o that_o time_n confer_v authority_n upon_o the_o person_n seem_v enough_o to_o make_v they_o such_o which_o in_o my_o apprehension_n will_v make_v little_a of_o the_o power_n of_o order_n and_o will_v be_v a_o very_a lax_n and_o cheap_a salvo_n to_o make_v good_a the_o usurpation_n which_o either_o now_o or_o at_o any_o time_n heretofore_o have_v be_v make_v by_o sectary_n upon_o the_o priest_n office_n beside_o when_o they_o will_v empower_v person_n even_o synod_n themselves_o or_o bishop_n meet_v there_o can_v not_o confer_v order_n as_o i_o say_v more_o than_o sacrament_n by_o what_o way_n they_o please_v but_o be_v bind_v up_o as_o i_o apprehend_v to_o divine_a institution_n and_o be_v not_o leave_v to_o dispose_v of_o ministerial_a or_o episcopal_a power_n by_o way_n of_o sentence_n or_o of_o legislation_n but_o only_o by_o imposition_n of_o episcopal_a hand_n but_o however_o it_o may_v be_v in_o the_o opinion_n of_o st._n cyprian_n and_o the_o african_a church_n of_o that_o age_n the_o african_n carry_v the_o effect_n of_o schism_n far_o than_o other_o to_o the_o null_n of_o their_o baptism_n and_o ordination_n i_o think_v this_o null_n of_o all_o ordination_n of_o opposite_a or_o anti-bishop_n or_o make_v they_o null_a in_o themselves_o be_v no_o catholic_n doctrine_n nor_o do_v the_o church_n tie_v itself_o thereto_o or_o proceed_v thereby_o in_o other_o age_n the_o two_o most_o famous_a schism_n head_v by_o opposite_a or_o anti-bishop_n in_o the_o primitive_a time_n and_o consist_v of_o man_n who_o retain_v the_o same_o faith_n with_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v those_o of_o the_o novatian_o and_o donatist_n but_o the_o ordination_n of_o anti-bishop_n be_v allow_v to_o make_v man_n bishop_n and_o priest_n in_o both_o these_o case_n one_o be_v the_o schism_n of_o the_o novatian_o which_o i_o think_v present_v we_o with_o the_o first_o set_v up_o of_o anti-bishop_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n against_o other_o bishop_n keep_v to_o the_o same_o faith_n that_o be_v profess_v by_o themselves_o and_o which_o be_v of_o the_o more_o account_n in_o this_o case_n because_o of_o this_o st._n cyprian_a himself_n speak_v say_v on_o account_n of_o novatian_n when_o ox._n he_o set_v up_o as_o a_o anti-bishop_n against_o cornelius_n that_o the_o second_o bishop_n be_v not_o real_o secundus_fw-la but_o nullus_fw-la not_o a_o second_o
a_o bond_n each_o of_o they_o pro_fw-la solid_a i._n e._n for_o the_o whole_a sum_n these_o local_a limitation_n and_o appropriation_n of_o precinct_n to_o have_v every_o bishop_n the_o bishop_n of_o some_o place_n and_o to_o have_v but_o one_o bishop_n at_o a_o time_n in_o a_o city_n or_o place_n be_v great_a and_o necessary_a rule_n it_o be_v true_a of_o order_n and_o unity_n and_o all_o the_o pastoral_a power_n be_v most_o high_o serve_v by_o have_v they_o to_o direct_v their_o exercise_n and_o will_v be_v mighty_o disturb_v and_o hinder_v of_o their_o end_n by_o the_o want_n thereof_o so_o that_o they_o be_v conscientious_o and_o careful_o to_o be_v observe_v and_o maintain_v in_o the_o church_n but_o their_o necessity_n be_v for_o order_n and_o unity_n not_o for_o the_o be_v of_o episcopacy_n and_o when_o there_o be_v two_o bishop_n head_v separate_a church_n at_o once_o in_o a_o place_n that_o duplicity_n must_v only_o prove_v one_o to_o be_v a_o schifmatick_a but_o do_v not_o prove_v he_o as_o i_o think_v may_v sufficient_o appear_v from_o what_o have_v be_v here_o discourse_v to_o be_v no_o bishop_n nay_o while_o this_o separation_n of_o church_n can_v be_v without_o the_o gild_n of_o schism_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o first_o stand_v off_o of_o the_o jew_n from_o the_o gentile_a convert_v and_o as_o the_o bless_a apostle_n themselves_o allow_v it_o shall_v be_v for_o a_o time_n till_o the_o jew_n can_v be_v bring_v to_o see_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o communicate_v with_o gentile_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o all_o their_o former_a receive_a opinion_n i_o say_v whilst_o such_o separation_n be_v to_o be_v tolerate_v without_o imputation_n of_o schism_n to_o suit_v the_o necessity_n of_o the_o church_n during_o their_o prejudices_fw-la it_o be_v very_o likely_a there_o be_v two_o bishop_n set_v up_o in_o the_o same_o place_n by_o the_o holy_a apostle_n themselves_o thus_o in_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v probable_a that_o at_o first_o there_o be_v at_o once_o two_o church_n one_o of_o jew_n and_o the_o other_o of_o gentile_n gather_v there_o by_o the_o two_o great_a apostle_n st._n peter_n and_o st._n paul_n epiphanius_n say_v of_o both_o these_o apostle_n that_o at_o rome_n they_o be_v 6._o both_o the_o first_o apostle_n and_o the_o first_o bishop_n and_o set_v down_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o first_o succession_n of_o that_o church_n double_a of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n this_o ib._n say_v he_o be_v the_o succession_n peter_n and_o paul_n linus_n and_o cletus_n unite_v clemens_n euirdstus_fw-la alexander_n xystus_n and_o so_o on_o and_o this_o be_v think_v to_o be_v the_o best_a reconciliation_n of_o those_o various_a account_n of_o the_o first_o successor_n to_o the_o holy_a apostle_n in_o that_o church_n and_o the_o like_a may_v reasonable_o be_v think_v of_o other_o church_n where_o jew_n and_o gentile_n live_v intermix_v epiphanius_n note_v it_o as_o a_o thing_n extraordinary_a and_o unusual_a in_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n which_o be_v a_o place_n much_o inhabit_v and_o resort_v to_o by_o the_o 9_o jew_n and_o where_o the_o 35._o first_o church_n be_v plant_v by_o st._n mark_n who_o be_v make_v bishop_n thereof_o by_o st._n peter_n the_o apostle_n of_o the_o jew_n 6._o that_o it_o have_v never_o at_o any_o time_n have_v two_o bishop_n in_o the_o same_o city_n at_o once_o like_o other_o city_n so_o that_o what_o the_o have_v of_o two_o bishop_n in_o the_o same_o city_n at_o once_o strikes_z at_z be_v the_o duty_n of_o church-unity_n but_o where_o it_o can_v be_v tolerate_v without_o imputation_n of_o schism_n and_o be_v not_o destructive_a of_o the_o require_a unity_n as_o it_o be_v not_o in_o those_o first_o beginning_n of_o the_o church_n when_o god_n be_v please_v for_o a_o time_n to_o tolerate_v the_o former_a separation_n between_o jew_n and_o gentile_n till_o the_o jew_n have_v out-grown_a their_o prejudices_fw-la against_o communion_n with_o gentile_n it_o be_v not_o destructive_a of_o or_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o be_v of_o episcopacy_n thus_o be_v not_o the_o opposite_a or_o anti-bishop_n ordination_n but_o only_o his_o communion_n exclude_v by_o have_v but_o one_o bishop_n in_o a_o church_n at_o a_o time_n and_o by_o the_o rightful_a bishop_n be_v the_o principle_n of_o church-union_n because_o another_o be_v their_o rightful_a bishop_n he_o can_v not_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o that_o place_n or_o diocese_n since_o they_o can_v not_o have_v two_o bishop_n at_o once_o and_o because_o that_o other_o be_v their_o principle_n of_o union_n they_o be_v not_o to_o communicate_v with_o he_o as_o i_o have_v show_v at_o large_a in_o the_o precede_a chapter_n but_o though_o he_o be_v not_o their_o bishop_n nor_o be_v to_o have_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o faithful_a by_o reason_n of_o his_o schism_n yet_o he_o may_v be_v a_o bishop_n and_o have_v the_o power_n of_o order_n by_o imposition_n of_o episcopal_a hand_n in_o his_o own_o ordination_n so_o that_o among_o such_o anti-bishop_n and_o their_o adherent_n we_o be_v to_o lament_v the_o loss_n of_o unity_n and_o church_n communion_n but_o not_o of_o all_o order_n and_o baptism_n as_o if_o by_o such_o schism_n they_o be_v render_v utter_o uncapable_a either_o to_o baptize_v or_o ordain_v and_o so_o be_v like_a to_o have_v neither_o priesthood_n nor_o christianity_n leave_v among_o they_o chap._n vii_o of_o the_o excuseableness_n of_o the_o people_n receive_v ministerial_a office_n from_o man_n in_o a_o schism_n rather_o than_o live_v without_o any_o at_o all_o but_o under_o such_o division_n the_o rightful_a bishop_n and_o clergy_n suppose_v the_o sufferer_n to_o be_v in_o the_o right_n may_v be_v too_o few_o to_o give_v general_a opportunity_n for_o all_o those_o good_a christian_n who_o will_v keep_v to_o they_o to_o communicate_v in_o ministerial_a office_n and_o in_o vast_a number_n of_o place_n for_o the_o people_n to_o shun_v communion_n with_o the_o clergy_n adhere_v to_o the_o anti-bishop_n or_o take_v part_n with_o they_o will_v be_v to_o have_v no_o communion_n at_o all_o in_o any_o ministerial_a office_n since_o they_o can_v not_o have_v they_o from_o any_o other_o i_o do_v not_o say_v it_o will_v be_v so_o with_o the_o clergy_n themselves_o who_o part_n and_o place_n be_v to_o afford_v ministerial_a office_n they_o need_v not_o want_v they_o unless_o they_o please_v and_o if_o they_o can_v have_v any_o though_o but_o one_o or_o two_o to_o join_v with_o they_o therein_o they_o may_v minister_v in_o a_o holy_a assembly_n who_o have_v christ_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o as_o 20._o he_o himself_o say_v but_o though_o they_o will_v not_o fall_v under_o this_o necessity_n nor_o have_v such_o ground_n to_o plead_v the_o favour_n of_o this_o case_n yet_o the_o people_n often_o may_v and_o suppose_v the_o schism_n what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v by_o the_o people_n in_o this_o case_n if_o they_o be_v careful_a to_o shun_v these_o ministerial_a office_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o schismatic_n in_o place_n where_o they_o can_v have_v they_o from_o other_o may_v they_o not_o without_o imputation_n of_o overlook_v the_o criminalness_n of_o schism_n have_v recourse_n to_o they_o as_o a_o makeshift_n especial_o if_o they_o profess_v and_o give_v out_o that_o they_o do_v it_o only_o on_o that_o account_n where_o they_o can_v have_v none_o else_o or_o rather_o than_o live_v without_o any_o at_o all_o i_o hope_v meekness_n they_o may_v and_o that_o the_o necessity_n of_o have_v public_a worship_n and_o ministerial_a office_n will_v excuse_v the_o fa●iltiness_n and_o obliquity_n of_o have_v it_o at_o the_o hand_n of_o one_o communicate_v in_o a_o schism_n or_o out_o of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n to_o persuade_v this_o i_o observe_v that_o schism_n be_v break_v the_o one_o body_n into_o party_n or_o make_v sedition_n in_o the_o church_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o schism_n or_o the_o malignity_n of_o have_v to_o do_v with_o a_o sedition_n or_o party_n be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o own_n or_o espousal_n thereof_o and_o that_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o true_a body_n but_o when_o in_o mere_a necessity_n man_n who_o live_v among_o they_o have_v to_o do_v with_o such_o and_o profess_v they_o take_v up_o with_o they_o only_o because_o they_o be_v in_o want_n of_o other_o who_o as_o they_o ought_v so_o they_o glad_o will_v associate_v and_o join_v with_o such_o profess_a serve_v of_o their_o own_o necessity_n and_o disapprove_v of_o the_o other_o party_n be_v not_o to_o own_o and_o espouse_v they_o and_o much_o less_o be_v it_o to_o take_v their_o part_n and_o stand_v by_o they_o against_o the_o true_a body_n since_o this_o come_n near_o they_o at_o all_o be_v only_o for_o want_v thereof_o and_o before_o they_o appear_v to_o oppose_v the_o right_n they_o shall_v be_v put_v into_o the_o
but_o under_o 25._o hezekiah_n when_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a and_o general_a defection_n which_o have_v be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o father_n ahaz_n the_o priest_n who_o have_v sanctify_v themselves_o be_v too_o few_o as_o the_o text_n say_v to_o slay_v all_o the_o burnt-offering_n rather_o than_o any_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n shall_v drop_v their_o brethren_n the_o levite_n slay_v they_o and_o help_v the_o priest_n therein_o till_o the_o work_n be_v end_v and_o till_o the_o other_o priest_n have_v perform_v their_o legal_a cleansing_n or_o sanctify_a themselves_o 2_o chron._n 29._o 34._o and_o the_o same_o on_o a_o like_a want_n of_o the_o regular_a and_o appropriate_a minister_n to_o have_v recourse_n to_o for_o this_o ministration_n be_v do_v again_o 2_o chron._n 30._o 17._o again_o it_o be_v a_o positive_a duty_n and_o rule_n that_o the_o legal_o unclean_a as_o leper_n or_o they_o who_o have_v touch_v dead_a body_n or_o any_o person_n either_o man_n or_o woman_n under_o any_o accident_n or_o thing_n which_o their_o law_n judge_v uncleanness_n shall_v not_o eat_v of_o the_o pass-ove_a or_o other_o holy_a thing_n leu._n 15._o 31._o etc._n etc._n 22._o 4_o 5_o 6._o &_o numb_a 9_o 6._o but_o yet_o rather_o than_o lose_v the_o pass-ove_a at_o a_o time_n when_o there_o be_v the_o great_a reason_n for_o they_o to_o partake_v therein_o they_o be_v allow_v to_o let_v fall_v this_o legal_a rite_n and_o the_o legal_o unclean_a be_v admit_v under_o hezekiah_n when_o he_o come_v to_o the_o throne_n his_o first_o and_o chief_a care_n be_v to_o set_v up_o a_o reformation_n of_o religion_n which_o have_v suffer_v so_o exceed_o in_o achaz'_v reign_v and_o in_o pursuit_n thereof_o he_o call_v not_o only_a judah_n but_o also_o israel_n to_o the_o keep_n of_o his_o first_o pass-ove_a at_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n at_o jerusalem_n which_o he_o have_v cleanse_v and_o restore_v from_o the_o pollution_n of_o idol_n to_o the_o worship_n and_o service_n of_o the_o true_a god_n 2_o chron._n 30._o 1._o and_o when_o upon_o his_o letter_n not_o only_o they_o of_o judah_n but_o several_a also_o of_o israel_n be_v come_v that_o he_o may_v not_o balk_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o reformation_n nor_o the_o people_n lose_v the_o end_n of_o their_o come_n especial_o they_o of_o israel_n viz._n out_o of_o ephraim_n manasse_n issachar_n and_o zebulon_n who_o have_v never_o be_v there_o before_o 26_o since_o the_o day_n of_o solomon_n they_o be_v admit_v to_o eat_v in_o their_o legal_a uncleanness_n without_o legal_a cleansing_n rather_o than_o go_v without_o the_o pass-ove_a though_o this_o be_v to_o eat_v it_o otherwise_o than_o it_o be_v write_v 2_o chron._n 30._o 18_o 19_o and_o in_o so_o do_v it_o be_v say_v god_n accept_v they_o v_o 20._o the_o like_a i_o may_v observe_v of_o the_o christian_a pass-ove_a or_o of_o our_o holy_a eucharist_n this_o by_o a_o positive_a rule_n among_o we_o or_o by_o our_o bless_a saviour_n 25._o commandment_n and_o institution_n be_v to_o be_v administer_v in_o wine_n and_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o consecrate_v or_o administer_v the_o same_o in_o any_o other_o liquor_n but_o wine_n or_o the_o juice_n of_o the_o grape_n after_o it_o be_v perfect_v and_o purge_v by_o fermentation_n but_o this_o positive_a duty_n of_o do_v it_o in_o wine_n seem_v to_o be_v mean_v strict_o only_o whilst_o wine_n can_v be_v have_v wherewith_o to_o keep_v up_o this_o holy_a administration_n and_o with_o allowance_n to_o those_o christian_n and_o country_n who_o have_v no_o wine_n rather_o than_o live_v without_o the_o bless_a eucharist_n to_o administer_v it_o in_o some_o other_o liquor_n which_o come_v as_o near_o it_o and_o be_v make_v as_o like_a to_o it_o as_o they_o can_v and_o julius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n direct_v the_o errabant_fw-la egyptian_a bishop_n that_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n where_o they_o can_v not_o have_v wine_n for_o this_o purpose_n they_o shall_v squeeze_v a_o cluster_n of_o grape_n into_o the_o chalice_n and_o mix_v some_o water_n therewith_o use_v it_o instead_o thereof_o and_o like_v to_o this_o be_v do_v at_o this_o day_n by_o the_o christian_n of_o habassinia_n that_o large_a and_o potent_a christian_a kingdom_n in_o africa_n who_o 71._o though_o they_o have_v good_a grape_n yet_o through_o the_o heat_n of_o their_o climate_n or_o other_o cause_n can_v make_v no_o wine_n thereof_o and_o also_o by_o the_o coptile_n in_o egypt_n and_o by_o the_o christian_n of_o st._n thomas_n in_o india_n who_o for_o want_v of_o true_a wine_n all_o use_n water_n infuse_v on_o raisin_n and_o fqueeze_v from_o they_o as_o we_o be_v tell_v by_o 378._o those_o who_o have_v give_v the_o best_a account_n of_o those_o place_n 3._o thus_o the_o people_n and_o church_n of_o god_n have_v hold_v and_o practise_v under_o the_o great_a schism_n of_o former_a time_n 1._o it_o do_v so_o i_o conceive_v in_o the_o schifm_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n or_o of_o the_o ten_o tribe_n the_o good_a people_n among_o they_o be_v not_o without_o sacrifice_n and_o ministerial_a office_n to_o be_v have_v in_o their_o synagogue_n and_o high_a place_n as_o well_o as_o at_o jeroboam_n calf_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o true_a god_n must_v needs_o have_v fail_v much_o more_o and_o much_o soon_o in_o israel_n than_o it_o do_v have_v it_o be_v otherwise_o in_o some_o persecution_n indeed_o raise_v against_o the_o worshipper_n of_o the_o true_a god_n there_o be_v none_o leave_v to_o minister_n to_o they_o as_o it_o be_v in_o jezabels_n persecution_n when_o she_o cut_v off_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o when_o those_o hundred_o prophet_n who_o good_a obadiah_n save_v be_v all_o hide_v and_o keep_v secret_a in_o two_o cave_n 1_o king_n 18._o 4_o 13._o so_o that_o elijah_n know_v of_o none_o who_o go_v about_o afford_v any_o relîgious_a ministratîon_n but_o himself_o and_o according_o tell_v god_n that_o of_o all_o his_o prophet_n he_o be_v leave_v alone_o 1_o king_n 19_o 10_o 14._o and_o then_o the_o seven_o thousand_o soul_n who_o as_o god_n tell_v the_o prophet_n have_v not_o bow_v the_o knee_n to_o baal_n but_o keep_v true_a to_o he_o all_o that_o time_n ver_fw-la 18._o can_v not_o resort_v to_o ministerial_a office_n because_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o way_n of_o those_o who_o can_v afford_v they_o or_o sometime_o when_o the_o kingdom_n be_v not_o at_o war_n and_o when_o that_o will_v be_v connive_v at_o notwithstanding_o the_o order_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n to_o the_o contrary_a make_v at_o first_o by_o 28._o jeroboam_n wicked_a policy_n they_o may_v go_v up_o now_o and_o then_o to_o the_o temple_n at_o jerusalem_n as_o tobit_n who_o live_v under_o such_o failure_n of_o true_a worship_n and_o ministration_n 7._o say_v he_o do_v at_o the_o feast_n carry_v his_o first-fruit_n and_o ten_o with_o he_o to_o give_v to_o the_o son_n of_o aaron_n though_o in_o this_o go_n up_o he_o say_v he_o be_v alone_o when_o all_o the_o tribe_n and_o the_o house_n of_o his_o father_n sacrifice_v to_o baal_n before_o they_o be_v lead_v away_o captive_a by_o the_o assyrian_n but_o that_o way_n of_o keep_v up_o religion_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o true_a god_n in_o those_o ten_o tribe_n which_o be_v both_o general_n to_o the_o body_n of_o good_a people_n among_o they_o and_o constant_a or_o a_o way_n of_o do_v it_o in_o all_o time_n be_v the_o ministration_n of_o their_o own_o kingdom_n or_o such_o ministerial_a office_n as_o be_v perform_v among_o themselves_o that_o be_v by_o their_o own_o prophet_n train_v up_o in_o their_o own_o school_n or_o college_n and_o by_o their_o own_o priest_n who_o be_v to_o preach_v the_o law_n and_o to_o minister_v religious_a office_n these_o priest_n and_o prophet_n be_v in_o the_o place_n of_o shepherd_n be_v bind_v to_o administer_v these_o office_n and_o be_v severe_o etc._n blame_v and_o threaten_v by_o god_n in_o israel_n as_o well_o as_o other_o be_v in_o judah_n if_o instead_o of_o feed_v their_o flock_n they_o shall_v only_o feed_v themselves_o and_o if_o he_o require_v the_o one_o to_o minister_v they_o since_o the_o relative_n carriage_n and_o dependence_n ought_v always_o to_o be_v reciprocal_a between_o relative_n he_o must_v in_o consequence_n allow_v the_o other_o i_o think_v under_o this_o necessity_n to_o resort_v to_o they_o for_o i_o conceive_v the_o pastor_n can_v not_o stand_v bind_v to_o preach_v to_o those_o who_o be_v bind_v never_o to_o hear_v they_o or_o to_o minister_v to_o those_o who_o be_v in_o no_o wise_a allow_v to_o partake_v in_o their_o ministration_n and_o these_o ministration_n those_o good_a people_n have_v to_o communicate_v in_o not_o only_o at_o jeroboam_n calf_n where_o god_n be_v profane_v by_o the_o worship_n of_o
image_n but_o also_o in_o their_o synagogue_n or_o high_a place_n but_o now_o all_o this_o communion_n of_o the_o good_a people_n among_o they_o be_v communicate_v with_o those_o who_o minister_v in_o a_o schism_n for_o the_o altar_n at_o jerusalem_n god_n himself_o have_v 11_o appoint_v as_o the_o only_a altar_n whereon_o they_o shall_v offer_v any_o burn_a offering_n set_v it_o up_o for_o the_o principle_n of_o union_n or_o as_o that_o which_o shall_v compact_v together_o or_o keep_v at_o one_o all_o the_o tribe_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n and_o nation_n and_o the_o new_a altar_n at_o dan_n and_o bethel_n be_v set_v up_o 28._o by_o jeroboam_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o one_o altar_n at_o jerusalem_n as_o be_v also_o all_o those_o other_o altar_n which_o the_o people_n set_v up_o and_o whereat_o they_o offer_v sacrifice_n and_o burn_a incense_n in_o the_o usual_a place_n of_o their_o religious_a assembly_n etc._n all_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n be_v require_v every_o sabbath_n day_n and_o at_o other_o set-time_n to_o hold_v holy_a convocation_n in_o all_o their_o dwelling_n or_o in_o their_o high-place_n where_o 32._o jeroboam_n build_v he_o house_n for_o worship_n at_o the_o same_o time_n when_o he_o set_v up_o his_o golden_a calf_n at_o dan_n and_o bethel_n and_o make_v priest_n for_o they_o of_o the_o low_a of_o the_o people_n out_o of_o 32._o which_o priest_n of_o high-place_n he_o take_v some_o to_o be_v priest_n at_o his_o altar_n at_o bethel_n at_o which_o high-place_n when_o they_o be_v free_a from_o all_o heathen_a idol_n the_o people_n for_o their_o devotion_n and_o convenience_n be_v very_o prone_a and_o strong_o bend_v to_o offer_v their_o incense_n and_o oblation_n as_o their_o ancestor_n have_v do_v in_o the_o 19_o day_n of_o samuel_n and_o also_o of_o 2._o solomon_n before_o the_o build_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o thus_o prove_v they_o be_v not_o only_o in_o the_o ten_o tribe_n of_o israel_n but_o in_o that_o of_o judah_n too_o where_o under_o great_a and_o careful_a reformation_n of_o religion_n in_o other_o respect_n we_o read_v so_o often_o of_o the_o people_n burn_a incense_n still_o and_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o the_o high-place_n as_o under_o 43._o jehosophat_n and_o 4._o azariah_n and_o jotham_n and_o under_o mannasseh_n after_o his_o repentance_n and_o restoration_n to_o his_o throne_n when_o though_o he_o reform_v religion_n 17._o nevertheless_o the_o people_n do_v sacrifice_v still_o in_o the_o high-place_n yet_o unto_o the_o lord_n their_o god_n only_o 35_o so_o that_o the_o priest_n in_o the_o ten_o tribe_n offer_v all_o their_o sacrifice_n at_o one_o or_o other_o of_o these_o opposite_a altar_n set_v up_o altar_n against_o altar_n and_o call_v all_o the_o people_n to_o take_v part_n with_o new_a altar_n or_o to_o 183._o become_v guilty_a of_o a_o schism_n of_o the_o criminallness_n and_o danger_n whereof_o they_o be_v admonish_v by_o hezekiah_n chro._n who_o send_v post_n and_o proclamation_n through_o all_o israel_n to_o invite_v and_o call_v they_o to_o come_v and_o keep_v the_o pass-ove_a at_o jerusalem_n according_a to_o what_o be_v 6._o write_v and_o this_o to_o 8._o prevent_v god_n further_a wrath_n and_o carry_v of_o the_o remnant_n away_o to_o babylon_n whither_o 7._o for_o this_o among_o other_o provocation_n he_o have_v already_o carry_v part_n of_o they_o yet_o the_o necessity_n of_o some_o public_a worship_n or_o ministerial_a office_n legitimate_a this_o communion_n of_o good_a people_n in_o all_o lawful_a service_n with_o these_o schismatical_a minister_n after_o the_o division_n when_o the_o kingdom_n be_v no_o long_o one_o the_o people_n be_v 28._o stop_v from_o go_v up_o to_o worship_n at_o jerusalem_n 2._o it_o do_v the_o same_o in_o legitimate_v communion_n with_o the_o schismatical_a novatian_o when_o the_o catholic_n be_v sore_a straighten_v by_o the_o persecute_v arian_n and_o at_o a_o loss_n for_o ministerial_a office_n in_o other_o place_n the_o persecute_v arian_n be_v not_o for_o tolerate_v opposite_a communion_n but_o for_o force_v all_o other_o to_o communicate_v with_o themselves_o persecute_v as_o socrates_n 142._o relate_v not_o only_o the_o catholic_n but_o also_o the_o novatian_o because_o though_o schismatic_n as_o to_o point_n of_o discipline_n and_o anti-bishop_n they_o be_v orthodox_n concern_v the_o nicene_n faith_n but_o their_o great_a severity_n be_v against_o the_o catholic_n to_o who_o as_o 571._o sozomen_n say_v they_o leave_v no_o oratory_n treat_v the_o schismatical_a novatians_n something_a more_o gentle_o to_o who_o as_o socrates_n 144._o add_v they_o allow_v three_o church_n even_o in_o the_o royal_a city_n or_o constantinople_n itself_o now_o in_o this_o want_n of_o catholic_n oratory_n or_o of_o ministerial_a office_n in_o adherence_n and_o unity_n with_o their_o own_o bishop_n the_o catholic_n say_v 144._o socrates_n and_o 571._o sozomen_n resort_v to_o the_o novatian_a church_n and_o join_v in_o their_o assembly_n and_o prayer_n and_o yet_o at_o that_o time_n when_o they_o do_v this_o the_o novatian_o be_v schismatic_n who_o have_v a_o anti-bishop_n of_o their_o own_o distinct_a from_o the_o catholic_n bishop_n of_o that_o church_n and_o be_v incorporate_v as_o a_o distinct_a body_n under_o he_o thereby_o keep_v up_o two_o head_n and_o two_o body_n in_o the_o same_o church_n which_o i_o think_v be_v plain_o a_o state_n of_o schism_n yea_o and_o those_o rigour_n of_o refuse_v reconciliation_n to_o those_o who_o have_v fall_v in_o persecution_n on_o pretence_n whereof_o they_o fall_v into_o this_o schism_n at_o first_o by_o ordain_v novatian_n a_o anti-bishop_n at_o rome_n against_o cornelius_n they_o still_o keep_v on_o and_o by_o reason_n of_o this_o which_o they_o allege_v and_o insist_v on_o as_o their_o 〈◊〉_d original_a or_o ancient_a precept_n they_o refuse_v as_o the_o aforesaid_a author_n 571._o testify_v to_o come_v to_o a_o perfect_a union_n and_o according_o the_o communion_n which_o they_o both_o mention_n as_o pass_v betwixt_o they_o be_v a_o 571._o communion_n in_o prayer_n because_o according_a to_o this_o ancient_a precept_n allege_v the_o novatian_o 245._o deny_v the_o communion_n of_o mystery_n or_o sacrament_n which_o be_v the_o seal_n of_o remission_n which_o in_o the_o case_n of_o those_o who_o have_v fall_v they_o will_v reserve_v as_o socrates_n observe_v to_o god_n himself_o so_o that_o what_o communion_n the_o catholic_n think_v it_o excusable_a to_o hold_v with_o they_o in_o this_o necessity_n or_o want_v of_o ministerial_a office_n from_o their_o own_o clergy_n be_v hold_v with_o man_n who_o plain_o officiate_v in_o a_o state_n of_o schism_n 3._o it_o do_v the_o same_o in_o our_o own_o great_a rebellion_n when_o our_o bishop_n be_v all_o drive_v cut_v and_o depose_v with_o the_o king_n for_o then_o the_o orthodox_n and_o loyal-adherent_n of_o the_o king_n and_o bishop_n take_v up_o with_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o parish_n church_n and_o thought_n that_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o public_a worship_n and_o ministerial_a office_n they_o may_v do_v so_o where_o they_o have_v no_o minister_n of_o their_o own_o to_o communicate_v with_o and_o yet_o what_o assembly_n be_v not_o only_o in_o a_o more_o barefaced_a and_o wicked_a rebellion_n but_o also_o in_o a_o more_o flagrant_a schism_n than_o the_o establish_a and_o comply_a church_n and_o assembly_n of_o that_o time_n so_o that_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o those_o our_o ancestor_n it_o be_v a_o good_a excuse_n for_o have_v divine_a office_n in_o such_o assembly_n when_o they_o can_v have_v better_a no_o where_o else_o 4._o last_o this_o necessity_n of_o have_v some_o ministerial_a office_n be_v general_o think_v to_o legitimate_a communion_n in_o those_o church_n which_o have_v no_o bishop_n thus_o it_o be_v in_o some_o foreign_a protestant_a church_n who_o have_v no_o bishop_n to_o head_n and_o unite_v they_o as_o our_o own_o church_n have_v not_o here_o at_o home_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o great_a rebellion_n and_o yet_o the_o people_n there_o must_v unite_v with_o their_o ministration_n because_o they_o must_v unite_v with_o some_o they_o must_v have_v some_o divine_a service_n and_o religion_n and_o if_o they_o must_v have_v it_o they_o must_v resort_v to_o some_o who_o minister_v it_o and_o if_o they_o can_v have_v no_o ministration_n thereof_o in_o a_o episcopal_a communion_n they_o must_v take_v up_o with_o it_o from_o such_o other_o as_o they_o can_v have_v i_o speak_v of_o the_o case_n of_o the_o people_n in_o those_o church_n and_o it_o be_v not_o the_o clergy_n but_o their_o liberty_n of_o take_v up_o with_o ministerial_a office_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o schismatic_n in_o want_n of_o other_o which_o i_o be_o here_o discourse_v of_o and_o in_o their_o case_n the_o necessity_n be_v full_a for_o their_o excuse_n for_o it_o be_v plain_a they_o can_v not_o have_v those_o ministration_n in_o episcopal_a communion_n
unless_o their_o clergy_n who_o they_o can_v resort_v to_o for_o the_o same_o will_v receive_v episcopal_a ordination_n and_o since_o in_o the_o place_n where_o their_o lot_n be_v fall_v they_o can_v not_o have_v episcopal_a communion_n they_o will_v be_v excuse_v for_o want_v it_o though_o worship_v god_n or_o communicate_v in_o ministerial_a office_n be_v a_o natural_a duty_n yet_o the_o confine_v this_o to_o the_o communion_n of_o a_o bishop_n be_v a_o positive_a limitation_n and_o necessity_n though_o it_o can_v discharge_v no_o natural_a duty_n yet_o may_v sometime_o excuse_v and_o supersede_n positives_n so_o that_o when_o they_o can_v not_o communicate_v in_o ministerial_a office_n under_o bishop_n they_o will_v be_v excuse_v i_o hope_v for_o communicate_v in_o the_o same_o without_o they_o and_o as_o to_o the_o clergy_n though_o i_o will_v not_o here_o discuss_v or_o determine_v their_o case_n yet_o be_v this_o necessity_n where_o it_o can_v be_v just_o and_o full_o plead_v think_v by_o many_o to_o bid_v fair_a for_o excuse_v &_o warrant_v they_o in_o minister_a without_o episcopal_a power_n for_o at_o one_o time_n the_o priest_n hood_n belong_v to_o the_o first-born_a at_o first_o it_o be_v lodge_v in_o the_o patriarch_n and_o thus_o we_o read_v of_o abraham_n that_o he_o will_v command_v and_o instruct_v his_o child_n and_o his_o household_n after_o he_o in_o the_o true_a religion_n gen._n 18._o 18._o and_o of_o he_o and_o jacob_n and_o job_n and_o other_o patriarch_n offer_v sacrifice_n and_o from_o the_o patriarch_n it_o come_v to_o be_v vest_v in_o the_o first-born_a till_o the_o levite_n among_o the_o jew_n be_v appropriate_v and_o give_v to_o god_n in_o exchange_n for_o they_o numb_a 3._o 41._o and_o this_o limit_v it_o afterward_o to_o one_o tribe_n or_o family_n as_o the_o line_n of_o aaron_n among_o the_o jew_n or_o to_o man_n episcopal_o call_v and_o ordain_v as_o it_o be_v among_o the_o christian_n be_v limitation_n of_o positive_a institution_n and_o therefore_o necessity_n which_o supersedes_o or_o excuse_v the_o want_n of_o positives_n though_o it_o leave_v they_o still_o under_o the_o force_n of_o natural_n be_v think_v to_o bid_v fair_a towards_o take_v off_o the_o exactness_n of_o these_o latter_a restraint_n and_o bear_v man_n out_o in_o part_v from_o they_o in_o those_o thing_n where_o they_o can_v not_o avoid_v it_o so_o long_o as_o they_o still_o keep_v close_o to_o they_o in_o other_o where_o they_o can_v if_o they_o have_v this_o necessity_n honest_o and_o fair_o to_o plead_v for_o themselves_o now_o if_o this_o necessity_n of_o people_n communicate_v in_o ministerial_a office_n will_v excuse_v their_o communicate_v with_o minister_n who_o have_v no_o bishop_n i_o see_v not_o but_o it_o shall_v do_v the_o same_o in_o point_n of_o communicate_v with_o minister_n who_o be_v break_v off_o from_o their_o own_o bishop_n for_o sure_o it_o be_v a_o more_o flagrant_a breach_n of_o union_n to_o break_v off_o from_o episcopacy_n itself_o than_o from_o any_o particular_a bishop_n and_o a_o deep_a schism_n to_o cast_v off_o all_o bishop_n than_o to_o cast_v off_o one_o and_o therefore_o that_o necessity_n of_o communicate_v in_o ministerial_a office_n which_o be_v allow_v to_o legitimate_a and_o excuse_v the_o one_o will_v not_o be_v deny_v to_o legitimate_a and_o excuse_v the_o other_o too_o 4._o beside_o this_o of_o god_n people_n have_v hold_v and_o practise_v thus_o under_o the_o great_a schism_n of_o former_a time_n in_o further_a confirmation_n of_o this_o liberty_n i_o observe_v last_o how_o it_o have_v do_v the_o same_o to_o give_v relief_n in_o some_o other_o compassionable_a case_n about_o communion_n which_o have_v only_o like_o plea_n for_o abatement_n as_o this_o case_n have_v for_o great_a purpose_n and_o what_o will_v be_v allege_v great_a than_o prevent_v a_o total_a want_n of_o public_a worship_n and_o ministerial_a office_n the_o church_n have_v abate_v in_o shun_v the_o communion_n of_o schismatic_n especial_o before_o they_o be_v cut_v off_o by_o judicial_a censure_n and_o of_o excommunicate_a person_n for_o in_o abatement_n of_o this_o keep_n off_o from_o their_o communion_n it_o have_v allow_v man_n to_o communicate_v with_o they_o at_o the_o beginning_n ere_o schism_n yea_o or_o heresy_n itself_o be_v full_o form_v and_o whilst_o it_o be_v capable_a of_o be_v prevent_v a_o heretic_n 10._o st._n paul_n order_v not_o to_o be_v reject_v from_o communion_n before_o he_o have_v have_v a_o first_o and_o second_o admonition_n so_o that_o till_o then_o in_o hope_n of_o prevention_n they_o may_v communicate_v with_o he_o and_o according_o the_o catholic_n do_v for_o a_o good_a while_n communicate_v with_o the_o arian_n after_o the_o burst_v out_o of_o that_o heresy_n whilst_o by_o that_o forbearance_n and_o by_o the_o other_o party_n seek_v still_o in_o their_o definition_n to_o come_v as_o near_o as_o they_o can_v to_o the_o truth_n they_o conceive_v hope_n of_o remedy_n or_o cure_v thereof_o there_o be_v no_o breach_n of_o communion_n on_o account_n of_o their_o different_a judgement_n for_o some_o time_n but_o all_o assemble_v together_o and_o join_v in_o the_o fame_n ministration_n as_o sozomen_n 514._o say_v or_o after_o the_o breach_n of_o communion_n be_v make_v and_o different_a church_n be_v set_v up_o though_o we_o do_v not_o go_v to_o they_o it_o have_v allow_v they_o to_o come_v to_o our_o assembly_n in_o hope_n to_o cure_v they_o thus_o at_o the_o begin_n of_o our_o reformation_n after_o the_o division_n from_o their_o church_n notwithstanding_o their_o adherence_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o their_o error_n both_o in_o worship_n and_o doctrine_n the_o papist_n be_v 1570._o allow_v for_o several_a year_n under_o queen_n elizabeth_n to_o come_v to_o our_o church_n and_o the_o dissenter_n from_o the_o episcopal_a communion_n among_o we_o be_v all_o schismatic_n but_o yet_o they_o have_v not_o be_v drive_v out_o thereof_o but_o allow_v to_o join_v with_o we_o in_o public_a office_n when_o they_o will_v come_v into_o our_o church_n as_o still_o they_o have_v be_v invite_v and_o encourage_v to_o do_v if_o they_o be_v not_o under_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n from_o the_o bishop_n court_n yea_o though_o their_o offence_n be_v liable_a to_o ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la excommunication_n by_o several_a ang._n canon_n such_o ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la excommunication_n be_v only_a sententia_fw-la lata_fw-la ab_fw-la ipso_fw-la jure_fw-la a_o sentence_n pass_v by_o the_o law_n which_o as_o the_o canonist_n say_v needs_o sententiam_fw-la latam_fw-la a_o judi●e_fw-la another_o sentence_n pass_v by_o the_o judge_n promulgata_fw-la a_o ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la excommunication_n by_o any_o canon_n not_o bar_v man_n from_o communion_n till_o there_o be_v a_o declaratory_a sentence_n as_o lyndwood_n note_v thus_o also_o they_o who_o in_o heathen_a persecution_n fall_v to_o sacrifice_v to_o idol_n 68_o be_v segregated_a or_o shut_v out_o from_o communion_n by_o the_o primitive_a canon_n and_o with_o man_n exclude_v it_o be_v make_v unlawful_a to_o communicate_v by_o the_o ap_fw-mi canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o other_o as_o i_o show_v before_o and_o gaius_n diddensis_fw-la and_o his_o deacon_n be_v suspend_v from_o communion_n themselves_o for_o communicate_v with_o lapser_n and_o yet_o in_o great_a need_n thereof_o and_o when_o there_o be_v hope_n thereby_o to_o recover_v they_o when_o in_o prison_n the_o egyptian_a martyr_n do_v in_o great_a charity_n communicate_v with_o they_o both_o at_o their_o common_a table_n and_o in_o prayer_n as_o hist._n dionysius_n alexandrinus_n report_v in_o these_o and_o other_o rule_n of_o discipline_n where_o there_o be_v great_a reason_n for_o favor_n and_o abatement_n the_o church_n itself_o will_v have_v no_o want_n thereof_o amphiloch_n in_o thing_n that_o will_v not_o bear_v extremity_n or_o the_o rigour_n of_o law_n as_o the_o father_n in_o the_o council_n in_o trullo_n and_o st._n basil_n also_o in_o his_o canon_n say_v they_o be_v to_o relax_v and_o make_v abatement_n according_a to_o custom_n and_o the_o form_n receive_v thus_o on_o great_a reason_n have_v some_o equitable_a abatement_n of_o the_o rigour_n of_o the_o foresay_a rule_n for_o shun_v of_o communion_n with_o man_n fall_v into_o heresy_n or_o schism_n or_o other_o deprive_v crime_n still_o be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n and_o some_o reasonable_a liberty_n indulge_v in_o those_o case_n it_o be_v think_v reasonable_a to_o recede_v thus_o and_o to_o take_v these_o liberty_n when_o put_v thereto_o to_o serve_v other_o people_n necessity_n must_v it_o not_o needs_o be_v to_o the_o full_a as_o much_o so_o when_o put_v thereto_o to_o serve_v our_o own_o it_o be_v allowable_a to_o serve_v the_o spiritual_a want_n of_o the_o offender_n can_v it_o be_v less_o so_o to_o serve_v those_o of_o innocent_a man_n so_o that_o as_o it_o suit_v as_o i_o show_v before_o with_o the_o reason_n
withhold_v the_o cup_n from_o the_o people_n which_o christ_n have_v appoint_v to_o be_v receive_v by_o all_o the_o communicant_n as_o well_o as_o the_o bread_n or_o what_o good_a prayer_n and_o oblation_n they_o do_v put_v up_o to_o god_n may_v be_v all_o in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n which_o be_v not_o to_o pray_v in_o that_o way_n that_o be_v necessary_a for_o christian_n who_o be_v to_o offer_v up_o a_o 24._o spiritual_a worship_n which_o be_v to_o be_v do_v by_o 16_o pray_v with_o understanding_n or_o the_o evil_a part_n which_o be_v intermix_v with_o the_o good_a be_v indispensable_o to_o be_v perform_v together_o with_o they_o and_o he_o who_o will_v communicate_v in_o one_o must_v not_o be_v allow_v to_o let_v the_o other_o alone_o as_o there_o can_v be_v no_o receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n without_o worship_v it_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o impose_v a_o compliance_n with_o its_o corruption_n as_o a_o condition_n to_o those_o who_o will_v partake_v in_o any_o sound_a part_n of_o its_o office_n and_o these_o be_v such_o hindrance_n of_o communicate_v with_o that_o church_n in_o the_o mass_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v urge_v in_o bar_n of_o communion_n under_o all_o immoral_a mixture_n of_o worship_n and_o devotion_n and_o much_o less_o be_v the_o allowance_n of_o some_o communion_n under_o such_o immoral_a mixture_n to_o be_v extend_v for_o a_o justification_n of_o the_o same_o communion_n in_o the_o assembly_n of_o jew_n yea_o or_o even_o of_o mahometan_n on_o pretence_n of_o join_v in_o like_a manner_n only_o with_o the_o good_a but_o stand_v off_o from_o the_o ill_a part_n of_o their_o office_n for_o that_o church-communion_n which_o as_o christian_n in_o our_o creed_n we_o all_o profess_v to_o believe_v and_o seek_v be_v the_o communion_n of_o saint_n that_o be_v in_o the_o language_n of_o those_o time_n of_o christian_n not_o any_o church_n communion_n of_o profess_a unbeliever_n but_o suppose_v that_o in_o a_o christian_a church_n retain_v all_o the_o essential_o of_o faith_n or_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n all_o that_o be_v necessary_a in_o christian_a worship_n be_v to_o be_v have_v pure_a and_o unspotted_a and_o in_o a_o tongue_n which_o all_o understand_v but_o some_o immoral_a petition_n or_o prayer_n be_v intermix_v therewith_o which_o people_n may_v be_v tolerate_v to_o pass_v over_o and_o to_o express_v dissent_n from_o whilst_o they_o show_v concurrence_n with_o all_o the_o good_a prayer_n which_o come_v along_o with_o they_o be_v they_o bar_v from_o such_o communion_n by_o such_o mixture_n as_o to_o this_o it_o may_v depend_v much_o upon_o the_o degree_n thereof_o according_a as_o the_o evil_a passage_n be_v tolerable_a or_o intolerable_a i_o mean_v not_o to_o be_v do_v as_o if_o any_o man_n be_v to_o expect_v a_o toleration_n to_o do_v a_o wicked_a action_n but_o to_o be_v bear_v on_o the_o point_n of_o this_o unlawfulness_n in_o care_n of_o keep_v union_n much_o will_v be_v bear_v withal_o for_o peace_n and_o in_o hope_n of_o see_v a_o cure_n thereof_o whilst_o more_o modesty_n be_v show_v in_o these_o unrighteous_a and_o immoral_a petition_n and_o in_o want_n thereof_o other_o way_n for_o the_o benefit_n of_o communicate_v in_o some_o ministerial_a office_n and_o public_a devotion_n man_n will_v bear_v more_o if_o such_o unlawful_a and_o immoral_a passage_n be_v few_o in_o number_n and_o occur_v more_o seldom_o in_o the_o service_n to_o shock_n and_o gall_v good_a mind_n or_o if_o they_o be_v any_o way_n uncertain_a and_o less_o peremptory_a in_o signification_n and_o some_o way_n or_o other_o accomodable_a to_o a_o innocent_a and_o lawful_a sense_n good_a people_n though_o they_o can_v not_o concur_v in_o will_v yet_o more_o patient_o endure_v they_o but_o they_o be_v less_o to_o be_v bear_v when_o more_o express_a and_o unavoidable_a in_o signification_n and_o more_o grow_v in_o number_n so_o that_o as_o any_o assembly_n multiply_v these_o petition_n they_o increase_v these_o difficulty_n and_o discouragement_n to_o those_o who_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o peace_n yea_o or_o on_o the_o set_n up_o of_o a_o schism_n after_o which_o they_o be_v no_o long_o bind_v to_o maintain_v ecclesiastical_a peace_n and_o union_n with_o they_o for_o the_o benefit_n of_o have_v public_a office_n and_o ministration_n will_v fain_o meet_v at_o their_o public_a service_n if_o once_o the_o mingler_n of_o such_o immorality_n in_o prayer_n shall_v to_o this_o impediment_n of_o immoral_a mixture_n add_v another_o viz._n of_o break_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n especial_o by_o set_v up_o of_o anti-bishop_n and_o form_v a_o elagrant_a schism_n there_o be_v a_o end_n of_o beaning_n with_o these_o mixture_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o peace_n and_o for_o maintenance_n of_o communion_n with_o they_o for_o this_o peace_n and_o union_n be_v not_o to_o be_v keep_v with_o schismatic_n as_o i_o have_v show_v the_o scriptural_a and_o ecclesiastical_a rule_n be_v not_o to_o seek_v but_o to_o shun_v communion_n with_o such_o person_n it_o be_v to_o keep_v unite_v to_o those_o bishop_n who_o be_v the_o orthodox_n and_o rightful_a head_n and_o to_o such_o as_o depend_v on_o they_o and_o adhere_v to_o they_o not_o to_o such_o heterodox_n divider_v as_o break_v off_o from_o they_o so_o that_o this_o bear_n with_o the_o irksomeness_n of_o such_o mixture_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o union_n be_v a_o reason_n of_o bear_v only_o before_o the_o formation_n of_o the_o schism_n but_o be_v never_o to_o be_v urge_v that_o way_n more_o but_o have_v all_o its_o force_n turn_v another_o way_n when_o once_o that_o be_v do_v or_o before_o such_o formation_n of_o a_o schism_n the_o immorality_n of_o those_o petition_n may_v be_v so_o express_a and_o unavoidable_a the_o iniquity_n of_o they_o so_o stare_v and_o heinous_a or_o the_o repetition_n thereof_o so_o numerous_a and_o the_o use_n thereof_o so_o flx_v and_o settle_v that_o good_a people_n neither_o will_v nor_o aught_o to_o bear_v they_o can_v they_o have_v any_o opportunity_n of_o do_v otherwise_o indeed_o sin_n and_o wickedness_n especial_o in_o any_o plane_n gross_a and_o great_a instance_n thereof_o if_o once_o evident_o make_v the_o matter_n of_o worship_n and_o put_v up_o in_o prayer_n set_v people_n at_o liberty_n in_o any_o church_n as_o i_o have_v 3._o show_v to_o refuse_v they_o and_o join_v in_o other_o who_o matter_n be_v pure_a and_o sinless_a when_o once_o therefore_o corruption_n get_v into_o the_o matter_n of_o prayer_n and_o sin_n make_v a_o part_n of_o sacred_a office_n it_o give_v a_o liberty_n for_o people_n to_o withdraw_v from_o those_o prayer_n though_o administer_v by_o their_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o if_o any_o minister_n regular_o empower_v will_v give_v they_o the_o opportunity_n thereof_o to_o change_v they_o for_o a_o pure_a and_o sinless_a service_n and_o still_o the_o high_a and_o more_o open_a the_o iniquity_n of_o such_o prayer_n or_o clause_n and_o the_o more_o numerous_a the_o repetition_n of_o they_o be_v the_o more_o be_v they_o not_o only_o set_v free_a but_o force_v and_o necessitate_v to_o this_o and_o the_o more_o answerable_o be_v the_o orthodox_n and_o faithful_a minister_n necessitate_v to_o afford_v they_o opportunity_n thereof_o lover_n of_o peace_n out_o of_o a_o ardent_a desire_n of_o union_n may_v forbear_v a_o while_n so_o long_o as_o those_o church_n be_v more_o modest_a in_o their_o corruption_n or_o whilst_o there_o may_v be_v hope_n of_o cure_v they_o especial_o at_o the_o begin_n and_o of_o close_v the_o breach_n and_o this_o allowance_n of_o forbearance_n for_o a_o time_n in_o case_n of_o such_o corruption_n of_o worship_n be_v no_o more_o than_o we_o see_v be_v make_v in_o case_n of_o heresy_n which_o be_v a_o corruption_n in_o faith_n this_o corruption_n of_o faith_n as_o well_o as_o corruption_n of_o worship_n give_v a_o discharge_n of_o communion_n as_o i_o have_v 3._o show_v and_o yet_o communion_n be_v not_o so_o discharge_v thereby_o but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v keep_v on_o for_o a_o time_n as_o i_o observe_v it_o be_v with_o the_o arian_n in_o the_o begining_n of_o that_o heresy_n the_o rule_n be_v not_o to_o 10._o reject_v a_o heretic_n from_o communion_n whilst_o he_o may_v be_v think_v sanable_a or_o not_o till_o he_o have_v have_v a_o first_o and_o second_o admonition_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v judge_v and_o practise_v by_o those_o orthodox_n at_o antioch_n who_o keep_v a_o meeting_n for_o some_o time_n in_o the_o arian_n assembly_n under_o leontius_n after_o their_o error_n and_o impiety_n be_v introduce_v into_o their_o public_a office_n and_o ministration_n and_o be_v put_v up_o to_o god_n in_o derogatory_n doxologys_n in_o which_o union_n of_o assembly_n these_o orthodox_n be_v head_v and_o lead_v on_o by_o flavian_n and_o diodorus_n that_o admirable_a pair_n of_o best_a man_n as_o they_o
be_v style_v by_o theodorit_n speak_v of_o this_o business_n and_o who_o first_o bring_v in_o the_o doxology_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o psalm_n which_o continue_v ●●ll_v too_o be_v use_v at_o the_o read_n thereof_o in_o our_o day_n but_o who_o whilst_o they_o show_v concurrence_n with_o the_o arian_n in_o all_o the_o good_a part_n of_o their_o office_n think_v fit_a to_o show_v their_o stand_n off_o from_o they_o in_o their_o corrupt_a and_o derogatory_n doxologys_n as_o oft_o as_o they_o come_v in_o the_o course_n of_o the_o public_a service_n for_o when_o 24._o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o hymn_n the_o arian_n sing_v glory_n be_v to_o the_o father_n in_o the_o son_n or_o as_o other_o glory_n be_v to_o the_o father_n by_o the_o son_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n aim_v by_o this_o change_n of_o particle_n to_o intimate_v dissimilitude_n and_o inferiority_n the_o orthodox_n sing_v glory_n be_v to_o the_o father_n and_o to_o the_o son_n and_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o that_o particle_n of_o conjunction_n make_v the_o three_o person_n all_o alike_o in_o receipt_n of_o this_o glory_n or_o express_v their_o equality_n but_o whatever_o compliance_n may_v be_v make_v thus_o for_o a_o time_n yet_o as_o the_o sinful_a mixture_n grow_v more_o fix_v and_o the_o iniquity_n be_v more_o open_a and_o bare-faced_n when_o it_o great_o and_o evident_o pollute_v devotion_n and_o corrupt_v man_n principle_n and_o practice_n and_o be_v carry_v on_o by_o all_o art_n and_o endeavour_n to_o entrap_v and_o catch_v soul_n there_o be_v more_o apparent_a necessity_n to_o stand_v off_o from_o they_o and_o then_o they_o be_v bind_v i_o conceive_v and_o as_o i_o think_v i_o have_v show_v 1._o to_o afford_v god_n faithful_a people_n more_o safe_a and_o salutary_a and_o christian_a administration_n and_o the_o people_n without_o any_o hindrance_n from_o the_o precept_n of_o peace_n and_o union_n be_v to_o break_v off_o from_o the_o other_o and_o to_o join_v therein_o so_o that_o such_o unlawful_a matter_n in_o prayer_n especial_o still_o as_o it_o grow_v more_o apparent_a and_o heinous_a and_o more_o firm_o fix_v therein_o be_v enough_o to_o carry_v people_n off_o notwithstanding_o their_o desire_n of_o peace_n and_o union_n from_o any_o assembly_n though_o they_o have_v not_o add_v anti-bishop_n to_o head_n their_o unlawful_a mixture_n or_o make_v a_o open_a schism_n in_o the_o church_n as_o to_o this_o mixture_n of_o immoral_a prayer_n then_o with_o such_o a_o service_n as_o be_v want_v in_o nothing_o else_o but_o have_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a in_o worship_n if_o these_o addition_n may_v be_v let_v alone_o the_o desire_n of_o keep_v peace_n and_o union_n in_o assembly_n or_o church_n whatever_o it_o may_v do_v for_o a_o while_n or_o in_o some_o case_n will_v not_o always_o get_v over_o they_o and_o if_o once_o the_o maker_n of_o immoral_a addition_n do_v moreover_o set_v up_o anti-bishop_n and_o make_v a_o schism_n for_o maintenance_n thereof_o unity_n be_v no_o long_o in_o duty_n to_o be_v keep_v but_o break_v with_o they_o so_o that_o the_o desire_n of_o unity_n will_v be_v no_o reason_n to_o bear_v therewith_o but_o to_o do_v quite_o contrary_a after_o that_o time_n but_o there_o be_v beside_o another_o and_o a_o strong_a ground_n of_o bear_v viz._n the_o necessity_n of_o have_v some_o ministerial_a office_n and_o public_a devotion_n when_o they_o live_v under_o a_o want_n of_o better_a opportunity_n &_o must_v take_v up_o either_o with_o these_o or_o none_o and_o this_o as_o it_o will_v excuse_v the_o faultiness_n of_o meet_v with_o those_o who_o be_v in_o a_o schism_n so_o i_o conceive_v meekness_n will_v excuse_v man_n too_o in_o bear_v with_o these_o corrupt_a matter_n and_o immoral_a addition_n whilst_o they_o can_v be_v allow_v sufficient_o to_o signify_v and_o express_v their_o dissent_n from_o they_o they_o come_v then_o it_o be_v true_a and_o as_o the_o forementioned_a orthodox_n christian_n do_v at_o antioch_n under_o the_o derogatoriness_n of_o the_o arian_n doxology_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o many_o good_a prayer_n submit_v to_o be_v present_a at_o other_o whereby_o they_o will_v see_v god_n worship_n profane_v and_o hear_v his_o sacred_a name_n dishonour_v and_o libel_v which_o be_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v a_o grievous_a mortification_n to_o every_o pious_a mind_n but_o they_o submit_v to_o be_v present_a at_o all_o this_o in_o the_o way_n of_o a_o necessary_a duty_n viz._n attend_v on_o some_o ministerial_a office_n and_o in_o want_n of_o all_o opportunity_n of_o have_v those_o more_o pure_a in_o any_o other_o place_n as_o be_v also_o the_o case_n of_o those_o orthodox_n at_o antioch_n where_o 24._o constantius_n have_v refuse_v to_o allow_v they_o so_o much_o as_o one_o church_n and_o meet_v it_o that_o way_n though_o they_o may_v see_v and_o hear_v it_o they_o be_v only_o aggrieve_v and_o wound_v but_o not_o pollute_v thereby_o as_o servant_n or_o any_o other_o be_v not_o pollute_v by_o hear_v god_n name_v blaspheme_v or_o see_v other_o wickedness_n commit_v which_o they_o be_v like_a to_o meet_v in_o the_o necessary_a duty_n and_o discharge_n of_o their_o attendance_n or_o station_n who_o be_v not_o guilty_a of_o the_o evil_a that_o be_v utter_v or_o act_v especial_o if_o they_o be_v allow_v to_o show_v dislike_n and_o to_o be_v reprover_n of_o it_o so_o that_o when_o other_o be_v guilty_a by_o concur_v in_o these_o immoral_a petition_n he_o contract_v no_o guilt_n by_o be_v present_a at_o they_o much_o against_o his_o will_n and_o in_o the_o necessary_a and_o due_a payment_n of_o some_o public_a devotion_n which_o he_o have_v no_o opportunity_n of_o pay_v any_o where_o else_o so_o long_o as_o he_o apparent_o single_v out_o the_o good_a and_o let_v all_o the_o bad_a alone_o nor_o be_v his_o mere_a presence_n at_o these_o additional_a immoral_a prayer_n a_o interpretative_a profession_n of_o his_o concurrence_n in_o they_o it_o be_v too_o rigorous_a i_o think_v to_o make_v come_v to_o any_o religious_a assembly_n a_o profession_n of_o concur_v in_o every_o particular_a which_o in_o any_o part_n of_o the_o ministration_n be_v profess_v or_o put_v up_o to_o god_n there_o man_n be_v liable_a to_o have_v various_a apprehension_n about_o some_o passage_n or_o other_o that_o may_v happen_v to_o be_v in_o the_o public_a service_n whether_o in_o the_o profession_n which_o be_v make_v to_o god_n or_o in_o the_o prayer_n which_o be_v put_v up_o to_o he_o and_o also_o about_o some_o undertake_n event_n or_o transaction_n of_o this_o world_n which_o may_v be_v bring_v as_o occasion_n be_v into_o the_o common_a service_n and_o devotion_n though_o all_o be_v not_o of_o one_o mind_n or_o belief_n about_o they_o and_o under_o this_o liableness_n to_o such_o variety_n of_o apprehension_n about_o these_o matter_n we_o can_v never_o be_v able_a to_o keep_v up_o public_a communion_n especial_o to_o keep_v it_o up_o so_o fix_v and_o constant_a and_o to_o keep_v all_o person_n in_o one_o communion_n as_o our_o lord_n require_v they_o shall_v be_v keep_v upon_o these_o term_n and_o they_o be_v more_o liable_a still_o to_o have_v the_o same_o variety_n of_o apprehension_n about_o private_a composure_n in_o pulpit-prayer_n which_o may_v be_v more_o subject_a to_o the_o tincture_n either_o of_o some_o particular_a opinion_n or_o expression_n which_o all_o can_v assent_v to_o or_o approve_v of_o consider_v which_o it_o will_v be_v hard_a still_o to_o keep_v up_o such_o communion_n under_o the_o allowance_n of_o these_o pulpit-prayer_n of_o private_a composure_n which_o yet_o beside_o what_o they_o have_v be_v former_o or_o be_v at_o this_o time_n in_o other_o place_n be_v now_o allow_v of_o by_o our_o own_o church_n in_o public_a fast_n indeed_o or_o thanksgiving_n where_o the_o very_a meeting_n or_o assemble_v be_v make_v significant_a of_o any_o purpose_n to_o be_v present_a at_o they_o be_v a_o profession_n of_o what_o be_v signify_v by_o they_o and_o it_o be_v insincere_a for_o those_o who_o abhor_v that_o design_n which_o they_o be_v appoint_v to_o carry_v on_o to_o afford_v their_o presence_n or_o meet_v at_o they_o but_o i_o think_v it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o any_o particular_a passage_n and_o petition_n in_o the_o ordinary_a devotion_n at_o other_o time_n and_o that_o come_n to_o church_n assembly_n at_o such_o time_n which_o be_v for_o devotion_n at_o large_a be_v no_o determinate_a and_o limit_a profession_n of_o concurrence_n in_o those_o passage_n from_o which_o though_o a_o man_n will_v profess_v to_o dissent_v yet_o may_v he_o still_o resort_v to_o the_o assembly_n for_o so_o many_o other_o purpose_n and_o of_o this_o difference_n betwixt_o these_o two_o as_o to_o their_o be_v a_o profession_n of_o concurrence_n they_o who_o list_v may_v see_v more_o in_o a_o 1_o book_n entitle_v of_o christian_a
prudence_n it_o be_v true_a it_o will_v give_v some_o presumption_n of_o concurrence_n in_o these_o petition_n if_o they_o visible_o manifest_v no_o dislike_n but_o whatever_o they_o be_v in_o their_o heart_n appear_v external_o to_o join_v in_o they_o as_o much_o as_o they_o do_v in_o other_o and_o therefore_o i_o conceive_v it_o be_v not_o amiss_o as_o they_o come_v in_o the_o course_n of_o the_o service_n by_o some_o external_a sign_n to_o show_v they_o disclaim_v and_o stand_v off_o from_o they_o as_o i_o note_v the_o orthodox_n do_v whilst_o in_o the_o beginning_n and_o as_o be_v hope_v more_o sanable_a age_n of_o the_o arian_n heresy_n before_o they_o break_v communion_n quite_o off_o they_o meet_v in_o the_o arian_n assembly_n under_o leontius_n at_o antioch_n but_o there_o be_v no_o room_n or_o pretence_n for_o such_o presumption_n of_o concurrence_n and_o they_o will_v be_v strange_a presumption_n that_o shall_v be_v make_v in_o contradiction_n to_o express_v declaration_n if_o we_o signify_v the_o contrary_a by_o some_o external_a sign_n for_o none_o must_v presume_v or_o we_o be_v not_o answerable_a for_o it_o if_o they_o do_v that_o we_o join_v in_o such_o passage_n if_o by_o some_o external_a sign_n we_o protest_v to_o all_o that_o we_o stand_v off_o from_o they_o whilst_o by_o like_a visible_a sign_n we_o show_v concurrence_n in_o all_o those_o good_a prayer_n which_o be_v put_v up_o together_o with_o they_o i_o grant_v the_o communion_n of_o prayer_n shall_v be_v a_o entire_a communion_n and_o no_o petition_n of_o public_a assembly_n shall_v be_v the_o private_a desire_n of_o some_o but_o the_o joint_a desire_n of_o all_o in_o common_a and_o where_o any_o thing_n be_v insert_v which_o all_o can_v join_v in_o it_o make_v a_o break_a communion_n but_o there_o the_o inserter_n thereof_o make_v this_o breach_n and_o other_o who_o be_v drive_v by_o necessity_n to_o bear_v the_o same_o only_o suffer_v it_o as_o their_o misfortune_n and_o when_o they_o can_v have_v no_o other_o which_o they_o will_v embrace_v though_o with_o persecution_n yea_o and_o it_o may_v be_v be_v illiterate_a and_o unable_a by_o read_v to_o carry_v on_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o the_o work_n of_o instruction_n in_o their_o own_o family_n it_o be_v better_a i_o think_v to_o take_v up_o with_o a_o break_a communion_n than_o with_o none_o and_o though_o their_o wish_n be_v to_o have_v one_o more_o entire_a yet_o till_o they_o can_v have_v their_o wish_n i_o conceive_v their_o way_n will_v be_v to_o communicate_v in_o most_o prayer_n rather_o than_o in_o none_o at_o all_o whilst_o they_o be_v careful_a then_o by_o some_o sufficient_a external_a sign_n to_o show_v their_o stand_n off_o from_o these_o additional_a immoral_a passage_n the_o necessity_n of_o have_v some_o ministerial_a office_n and_o devotion_n will_v bear_v they_o out_o i_o conceive_v when_o they_o can_v have_v no_o better_o in_o resort_v to_o such_o mix_a service_n for_o concurrence_n in_o the_o body_n of_o other_o good_a prayer_n but_o all_o this_o as_o i_o say_v be_v whilst_o such_o visible_a signification_n and_o refusal_n of_o the_o sinful_a matter_n will_v be_v allow_v of_o for_o if_o all_o either_o in_o reality_n must_v or_o in_o external_a show_n and_o appearance_n must_v seem_v to_o concur_v therein_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v guilty_a either_o of_o iniquity_n or_o hypocrisy_n and_o so_o upon_o that_o account_n be_v utter_o bar_v and_o shut_v out_o from_o such_o communion_n and_o thus_o much_o as_o it_o be_v great_o need_v so_o i_o have_v adventure_v to_o say_v on_o this_o point_n concern_v that_o liberty_n and_o allowance_n which_o in_o compliance_n with_o the_o love_n of_o peace_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o some_o ministerial_a office_n may_v as_o i_o conceive_v be_v make_v in_o abatement_n of_o the_o strict_a rule_n against_o communion_n with_o schismatic_n i_o know_v all_o the_o use_v some_o be_v apt_a to_o make_v of_o such_o concession_n be_v instead_o of_o make_v they_o relieve_v other_o only_o to_o turn_v they_o against_o the_o author_n and_o take_v hold_v of_o they_o as_o principle_n to_o try_v if_o thereby_o they_o can_v overthrow_v the_o main_a cause_n i_o think_v this_o be_v very_o disingenuous_a and_o a_o wrong_a way_n of_o reason_v too_o for_o it_o be_v beginning_n at_o the_o wrong_a end_n in_o these_o matter_n these_o concession_n be_v not_o set_v up_o for_o main_a principle_n much_o less_o as_o point_n to_o be_v hold_v against_o they_o but_o as_o point_n of_o favour_n and_o ease_n that_o may_v be_v think_v fair_o and_o equitable_o consistent_a with_o they_o which_o shall_v it_o happen_v otherwise_o the_o principle_n must_v stand_v firm_a unless_o they_o can_v be_v overthrow_v by_o argument_n intrinsic_a and_o proper_a to_o themselves_o and_o all_o that_o can_v be_v say_v as_o to_o these_o concession_n of_o ease_n be_v that_o there_o be_v a_o end_n of_o they_o so_o by_o that_o course_n man_n do_v not_o so_o much_o oppose_v the_o establish_v principle_n as_o themselves_o and_o what_o they_o show_v be_v that_o in_o consistence_n with_o truth_n of_o principle_n no_o concession_n can_v be_v make_v and_o that_o the_o truth_n will_v not_o permit_v they_o to_o make_v such_o approach_n or_o to_o come_v so_o near_o to_o they_o as_o they_o fain_o will_v do_v but_o these_o liberty_n in_o the_o present_a case_n seem_v to_o i_o fair_o reconcileable_a on_o the_o ground_n here_o give_v with_o the_o reason_n and_o reality_n of_o thing_n and_o with_o the_o intent_n of_o the_o foresay_a principle_n and_o every_o man_n be_v leave_v to_o judge_v for_o himself_o whether_o they_o be_v or_o no._n and_o thus_o i_o think_v it_o may_v appear_v both_o how_o careful_a we_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o shun_v the_o communion_n of_o anti-bishop_n &_o their_o schismatical_a adherent_n where_o we_o have_v other_o opportunity_n and_o ●●w_o for_o the_o benefit_n of_o some_o ministerial_a office_n we_o may_v be_v at_o liberty_n to_o take_v up_o with_o they_o when_o we_o can_v have_v the_o same_o from_o none_o else_o yea_o for_o all_o they_o happen_v at_o any_o time_n to_o have_v make_v a_o addition_n of_o immoral_a mixture_n to_o a_o body_n of_o otherwise_o good_a and_o sufficient_a prayer_n if_o we_o open_o and_o sufficient_o express_v our_o dislike_n and_o stand_v off_o from_o they_o whilst_o we_o as_o open_o concur_v and_o join_v in_o other_o and_o as_o it_o be_v before_o show_v who_o make_v the_o schism_n in_o any_o division_n of_o church_n and_o who_o can_v cure_v it_o in_o the_o foresay_a case_n so_o have_v find_v who_o be_v to_o answer_v for_o the_o schism_n this_o may_v suffice_v to_o show_v what_o communion_n may_v be_v hold_v with_o such_o and_o how_o good_a christian_n be_v to_o carry_v it_o towards_o both_o party_n as_o to_o that_o exercise_n of_o spiritual_a ministration_n then_o which_o faithful_a pastor_n stand_v so_o many_o way_n oblige_v to_o notwithstanding_o any_o deprivation_n of_o state_n yea_o or_o of_o synod_n as_o i_o have_v show_v the_o care_n of_o preserve_v unity_n or_o prevent_v schism_n in_o the_o church_n aught_o to_o be_v no_o stop_n thereto_o in_o the_o foresay_a case_n nay_o if_o to_o head_n their_o immoral_a prayer_n doctrine_n and_o practice_n the_o defector_n shall_v set_v up_o anti-bishop_n and_o so_o make_v a_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n the_o conscionable_a care_n of_o preserve_a unity_n will_v bind_v they_o fast_o to_o such_o faithful_a minister_n who_o be_v their_o rightful_a pastor_n and_o the_o conscionable_a and_o true_o christian_a dread_n of_o schism_n will_v make_v they_o effectual_o keep_v off_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o those_o defector_n who_o by_o erection_n of_o anti-bishop_n have_v set_v up_o altar_n against_o altar_n and_o schismatical_o break_v off_o from_o they_o and_o thus_o i_o have_v go_v through_o those_o particular_n which_o i_o think_v sit_v to_o be_v consider_v and_o of_o most_o force_n to_o clear_v up_o this_o argument_n and_o from_o what_o have_v be_v offer_v in_o these_o paper_n i_o think_v it_o will_v not_o be_v difficult_a for_o honest_a inquirer_n to_o see_v what_o their_o duty_n be_v under_o any_o unhappy_a difference_n or_o division_n of_o church_n at_o such_o time_n i_o pray_v god_n neither_o the_o desire_n of_o thrive_a nor_o the_o fear_n of_o suffer_v may_v make_v man_n afraid_a to_o see_v it_o or_o to_o follow_v what_o they_o see_v they_o ought_v to_o do_v when_o they_o be_v try_v with_o such_o case_n it_o extreme_o concern_v all_o man_n who_o will_v show_v any_o serious_a care_n of_o their_o immortal_a soul_n at_o such_o time_n to_o discern_v the_o right_a way_n and_o to_o take_v it_o in_o these_o matter_n it_o be_v not_o for_o any_o to_o think_v light_o of_o these_o point_n of_o difference_n for_o it_o be_v hard_a to_o say_v what_o thing_n will_v